Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n knowledge_n understanding_n wisdom_n 6,916 5 6.5948 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A58336 A divine looking-glass, or, The third and last testament of Our Lord Jesus Christ whose personal residence is seated on his throne of eternal glory in another world : being the commission of the spirit, agreeing with, and explaining of the two former commissions of the law and Gospel, differing only in point of worship : set forth for the tryal of all sorts of supposed spiritual lights in the world, until the ever-lasting true Jesus, the onely high and mighty God, pesonally appear in the air with his saints and angels / by John Reeve and Lodowick Muggleton ... Reeve, John, 1608-1658.; Muggleton, Lodowick, 1609-1698. 1661 (1661) Wing R676; ESTC R35141 178,978 220

There are 35 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

to_o treat_v upon_o the_o original_n of_o all_o heavenly_a secret_n wherefore_o in_o answer_n to_o these_o difficult_a query_n i_o shall_v write_v of_o several_a thing_n of_o most_o high_a consequence_n unto_o mankind_n namely_o concern_v the_o glorious_a creator_n himself_o and_o the_o original_a cause_n that_o move_v the_o divine_a majesty_n to_o produce_v any_o creature_n sensible_o to_o live_v in_o his_o sight_n and_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o of_o the_o imaginary_a lie_a creation_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o sinful_a man_n and_o whence_o it_o come_v also_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o angel_n before_o man_n with_o the_o material_n and_o manner_n of_o it_o 5_o i_o confess_v i_o have_v be_v move_v brief_o to_o touch_v upon_o most_o of_o these_o thing_n to_o the_o public_a view_n of_o many_o already_o but_o now_o through_o assistance_n of_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n i_o shall_v handle_v they_o more_o full_o in_o remove_v many_o obstruction_n in_o the_o way_n and_o for_o more_o clear_a satisfaction_n unto_o the_o true_a spiritual_a christian_a and_o confutation_n of_o all_o fleshly_a lie_a antichristian_n whatsoever_o 6_o first_o by_o immediate_a inspiration_n from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n i_o positive_o aff●●m_o against_o all_o naturalist_n under_o heaven_n that_o there_o be_v a_o creator_n 7_o second_o with_o the_o same_o confidence_n i_o affirm_v against_o man_n or_o angel_n that_o this_o our_o god_n from_o 〈◊〉_d eternity_n be_v a_o uncreated_a spiritual_a person_n in_o form_n like_o a_o man_n 8_o three_o from_o the_o same_o spirit_n i_o declare_v that_o that_o bless_a god-man_n christ_n jesus_n so_o exalt_v throughout_o the_o true_a scripture_n be_v and_o be_v that_o eternal_a creator_n beforesaid_a 9_o four_o i_o declare_v against_o all_o literal-monger_n in_o this_o world_n that_o this_o our_o creator_n and_o gracious_a redeemer_n be_v only_o one_o immortal_a undivided_a personal_a god-man_n from_o all_o eternity_n and_o in_o time_n and_o to_o all_o eternity_n 10_o five_o i_o declare_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o the_o addition_n of_o two_o person_n more_o unto_o this_o our_o only_a wise_a god_n bless_v for_o ever_o proceed_v only_o from_o the_o old_a serpentine_a antichristian_a devil_n in_o carnal_a man_n 11_o moreover_o as_o for_o those_o word_n of_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n or_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n or_o any_o other_o divine_a title_n in_o scripture_n you_o may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v only_a variety_n of_o name_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o infinite_a godhead_n glory_n of_o the_o creator_n person_n 12_o again_o i_o declare_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o from_o all_o eternity_n the_o creator_n person_n be_v of_o a_o sunshining_a fiery_a glory_n of_o sensible_a heavenly_a motion_n light_n heat_n voice_n and_o speech_n and_o his_o divine_a person_n be_v swift_a than_o thought_n 13_o moreover_o all_o variety_n of_o divine_a excellency_n as_o a_o crystal_n sea_n do_v infinite_o reign_v in_o his_o heavenly_a person_n as_o namely_o pure_a spiritual_a faith_n his_o almighty_a power_n or_o heavenly_a love_n his_o ravish_a glory_n or_o any_o other_o divine_a virtue_n that_o can_v be_v name_v 14_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v undoubted_o know_v that_o from_o all_o eternity_n the_o creator_n possess_v his_o heavenly_a joy_n or_o new_a glory_n by_o himself_o alone_o when_o no_o create_a be_v sensible_o appear_v to_o behold_v his_o excellent_a majesty_n 15_o by_o true_a inspiration_n from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n i_o positive_o affirm_v that_o the_o principal_a motion_n of_o all_o variety_n of_o heavenly_a wisdom_n joy_n or_o glory_n which_o the_o creator_n foresee_v he_o shall_v eternal_o possess_v natural_o spring_v in_o he_o from_o a_o incomprehensible_a knowledge_n of_o his_o own_o endless_a infiniteness_n 16_o or_o from_o a_o perfect_a understanding_n of_o a_o eternal_a increase_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o glorious_a excellency_n to_o solace_v himself_o withal_o and_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n that_o shall_v be_v c●●●ted_v by_o he_o 17_o if_o the_o creator_n shall_v be_v a_o infinite_a formless_a spirit_n as_o some_o man_n vain_o imagine_v my_o spiritual_a brethren_n you_o know_v then_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n to_o be_v make_v capable_a of_o fix_v his_o understanding_n upon_o any_o such_o spiritual_a creator_n 18_o you_o know_v that_o no_o man_n can_v describe_v the_o form_n of_o a_o invisible_a spirit_n whether_o it_o be_v finit_a or_o infinite_a unless_o it_o be_v cover_v with_o a_o body_n or_o person_n 19_o moreover_o you_o know_v also_o that_o no_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v be_v make_v able_a in_o the_o least_o to_o comprehend_v the_o nature_n of_o any_o spirit_n whatsoever_o that_o want_v a_o distinct_a body_n or_o person_n of_o its_o own_o to_o inhabit_v in_o 20_o therefore_o you_o can_v but_o understand_v that_o the_o creator_n of_o mankind_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o substantial_a glorious_a person_n and_o not_o a_o nonsubstantial_a formless_a spirit_n as_o beforesaid_a 21_o again_o notwithstanding_o every_o divine_a virtue_n in_o the_o creator_n person_n be_v infinite_a yet_o by_o inspiration_n from_o his_o own_o spirit_n i_o positive_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o kind_n of_o reason_n in_o he_o 22_o wh●●ever_v the_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o world_n have_v ●ong_o imagine_v concern_v pure_a reason_n be_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o god_n they_o be_v utter_o dark_a concern_v a_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o creator_n divine_a nature_n or_o personal_a glory_n in_o the_o least_o 23_o i_o declare_v from_o the_o true_a god_n that_o all_o those_o man_n that_o call_v pure_a reason_n god_n divine_a nature_n if_o they_o understand_v no_o other_o light_n before_o ●●ath_v seize_v on_o they_o they_o shall_v find_v their_o imaginary_a reason_n nothing_o else_o but_o a_o dark_a torment_a fiery_a devil_n of_o burn_a envy_n in_o their_o own_o body_n at_o the_o great_a day_n even_o against_o the_o creator_n himself_o and_o his_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n for_o everlasting_a 24_o for_o this_o i_o say_v from_o the_o lord_n unto_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a the_o very_a nature_n of_o reason_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o pure_a be_v nothing_o else_o but_o mere_a desire_n therefore_o you_o may_v know_v that_o if_o the_o creator_n himself_o shall_v have_v any_o desire_n in_o his_o spirit_n there_o will_v be_v a_o kind_n of_o want_n in_o he_o 25_o for_o if_o his_o nature_n be_v all_o variety_n of_o heavenly_a satisfaction_n in_o itself_o as_o it_o be_v what_o rational_a desire_n can_v find_v place_n in_o such_o a_o infinite_a fullness_n of_o divine_a glory_n 26_o moreover_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n what_o be_v the_o principal_a ground_n of_o all_o antichristian_a darkness_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o solomon-like_a man_n in_o reference_n to_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o his_o divine_a nature_n be_v it_o not_o because_o they_o think_v to_o apprehend_v the_o true_a god_n by_o a_o false_a light_n which_o they_o vain_o call_v pure_a reason_n 27_o what_o be_v this_o which_o worldly_a man_n call_v pure_a reason_n be_v it_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o that_o proud_a angelical_a serpent_n devil_n in_o they_o which_o by_o its_o own_o natural_a strength_n continual_o strive_v to_o find_v out_o the_o tree_n of_o eternal_a life_n that_o they_o may_v cure_v themselves_o of_o their_o deadly_a wound_n of_o soul_n arise_v from_o all_o their_o spiritual_a and_o fleshly_a rebellion_n against_o god_n and_o man_n 28_o again_o do_v the_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o creator_n run_v in_o the_o line_n of_o pure_a reason_n or_o pure_a faith_n in_o the_o scripture_n 29_o be_v there_o any_o say_n in_o scripture_n that_o god_n divine_a nature_n be_v pure_a reason_n or_o by_o pure_a reason_n we_o know_v the_o true_a god_n or_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v spiritual_a indeed_o i_o have_v read_v scripture_n that_o say_v by_o faith_n the_o apostle_n know_v the_o world_n be_v make_v and_o by_o faith_n they_o know_v their_o mortal_a body_n shall_v be_v raise_v immortal_a body_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o appear_v of_o christ_n in_o his_o glory_n but_o as_o beforesaid_a i_o never_o read_v or_o hear_v any_o spiritual_a wise_a man_n say_v that_o the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o eternity_n be_v understand_v by_o man_n pure_a reason_n no_o nor_o angel_n that_o behold_v the_o glorious_a creator_n face_n to_o face_n it_o be_v write_v with_o thou_o be_v the_o well_o of_o life_n and_o in_o thy_o light_n shall_v we_o see_v light_n it_o be_v also_o write_v that_o man_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o that_o abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n and_o by_o faith_n man_n be_v justify_v before_o the_o creator_n and_o in_o their_o own_o spirit_n and_o that_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a
lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v all_o the_o angel_n be_v equal_o create_v under_o one_o law_n the_o which_o moral_a law_n be_v write_v in_o their_o angelical_a nature_n motion_v in_o they_o that_o all_o obedience_n be_v proper_o due_a unto_o their_o creator_n which_o have_v make_v they_o such_o marvellous_a creature_n 19_o again_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o no_o create_v be_v be_v capable_a to_o be_v form_v in_o a_o lawless_a condition_n 20_o why_o because_o there_o be_v nothing_o uncapable_a of_o be_v make_v under_o a_o law_n from_o another_o but_o that_o divine_a be_v only_o which_o be_v eternal_o in_o or_o from_o itself_o you_o may_v also_o know_v that_o those_o very_a word_n of_o creation_n or_o creature_n include_v a_o creator_n and_o a_o command_n of_o all_o obedience_n due_a unto_o he_o 21_o also_o you_o know_v that_o no_o creature_n can_v acknowledge_v any_o kind_n of_o obedience_n to_o be_v due_a unto_o a_o god_n unless_o he_o be_v guide_v thereunto_o by_o 〈◊〉_d light_n or_o law_n from_o he_o that_o form_v he_o 22_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n from_o the_o divine_a voice_n of_o god_n himself_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o uncreated_a godhead_n itself_o be_v unto_o the_o create_a being_n of_o angel_n or_o man_n either_o a_o law_n of_o perfect_a faith_n and_o pure_a burn_a love_n in_o they_o towards_o god_n and_o man_n unto_o life_n eternal_a 23_o or_o else_o a_o fiery_a law_n of_o unbelieved_a burn_a envy_n they_o against_o god_n elect_a man_n and_o angel_n unto_o death_n eternal_a 24_o not_o that_o any_o sin_n or_o evil_n can_v possible_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o the_o creator_n into_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o ●_z either_o in_o his_o create_v of_o they_o or_o after_o they_o be_v form_v by_o he_o 25_o you_o know_v that_o be_v impossible_a because_o his_o divine_a nature_n in_o itself_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o all_o variety_n of_o ravish_a purity_n to_o himself_o or_o elect_a man_n or_o angel_n 26_o moreover_o you_o spiritual_a one_o may_v know_v that_o though_o the_o spirit_n of_o angel_n be_v create_v perfect_o pure_a in_o their_o kind_n and_o measure_n yet_o if_o they_o be_v not_o continual_o supply_v with_o inspiration_n from_o that_o divine_a glory_n which_o give_v they_o their_o being_n in_o stead_n of_o continue_v in_o their_o angelical_a brightness_n their_o spirit_n will_v become_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o bottomless_a pit_n of_o imaginary_a confuse_a darkness_n of_o aspire_a wisdom_n above_o the_o creator_n 27_o for_o the_o elect_a angel_n spirit_n be_v only_o pure_a reason_n the_o very_a nature_n of_o they_o be_v to_o desire_v after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o incomprehensible_a glory_n which_o give_v they_o their_o being_n and_o it_o be_v the_o variety_n of_o his_o divine_a excellency_n flow_v into_o their_o desire_a nature_n which_o be_v that_o heavenly_a food_n that_o be_v prepare_v for_o their_o eternal_a preservation_n 28_o my_o belove_a brethren_n if_o you_o look_v into_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o st._n peter_n you_o may_v see_v that_o the_o elect_a angel_n be_v of_o a_o desire_v or_o pry_v nature_n into_o the_o secret_a mystery_n of_o our_o god_n when_o he_o manifest_v himself_o on_o this_o earth_n in_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n the_o word_n be_v these_o search_v when_o or_o what_o time_n the_o spirit_n which_o testify_v before_o of_o ch●ist_n which_o be_v in_o they_o shall_v declare_v the_o suffering_n that_o shall_v come_v unto_o christ_n and_o the_o glory_n that_o shall_v follow_v the_o which_o thing_n the_o angel_n desire_v to_o behold_v 29_o furthermore_n i_o be_o persuade_v in_o my_o spirit_n the_o the_o form_n of_o angel_n be_v not_o very_o long_o before_o the_o create_v of_o adam_n and_o eve_n 30_o because_o you_o know_v that_o the_o elect_a angel_n be_v not_o only_o make_v for_o the_o personal_a society_n of_o the_o creator_n in_o his_o heavenly_a throne_n or_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n but_o they_o be_v appoint_v also_o for_o minister_a spirit_n unto_o the_o heir_n of_o salvation_n in_o this_o world_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o hebrew_n 31_o moreover_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v undoubted_o know_v that_o it_o be_v utter_o unpossible_a for_o man_n or_o angel_n to_o be_v void_a of_o all_o law_n in_o their_o creation_n 32_o because_o the_o creator_n himself_o become_v subject_a to_o his_o own_o law_n when_o his_o divine_a godhead_n be_v transumt_v into_o pure_a manhood_n 33_o it_o be_v truth_n that_o the_o uncreated_a eternal_a god_n be_v above_o all_o law_n and_o so_o uncapable_a of_o any_o ki●●_n of_o law_n before_o he_o descend_v from_o his_o infinite_a glory_n into_o the_o womb_n of_o a_o woman_n 34_o but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v capable_a of_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o servant_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o this_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n in_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n unto_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n therefore_o he_o transmute_v his_o unchangeable_a godhead_n into_o the_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a mortal_n for_o a_o season_n that_o he_o may_v become_v the_o heavenly_a pattern_n of_o perfect_a obedience_n to_o his_o own_o law_n in_o the_o visible_a sight_n of_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n 35_o and_o that_o from_o thence_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o suffering_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o curse_a canaanites_n he_o may_v also_o become_v a_o purchaser_n from_o himself_o of_o a_o twofold_a infinite_a ravish_a glory_n to_o himself_o and_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n the_o which_o his_o spiritual_a body_n be_v uncapable_a of_o until_o it_o become_v suffer_v flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n 36_o therefore_o whosoever_o say_v that_o any_o other_o body_n ascend_v into_o glory_n but_o that_o very_o same_o body_n of_o flesh_n and_o bone_n that_o suffer_v death_n upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v a_o antichrist_n &_o in_o utter_a spiritual_a darkness_n let_v he_o be_v the_o perfect_a literalist_n or_o naturalist_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n 37_o moreover_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a do_v know_v that_o it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a that_o heaven_n and_o earth_n with_o all_o the_o wonderful_a work_n in_o they_o shall_v be_v from_o eternity_n as_o godless_a atheist_n will_v vain_o imagine_v because_o they_o can_v attain_v to_o know_v what_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n be_v by_o their_o own_o natural_a reason_n 38_o for_n alas_o if_o no_o mortal_a man_n can_v give_v a_o be_v to_o one_o hair_n of_o his_o head_n though_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o other_o creature_n under_o the_o sun_n how_o shall_v he_o possible_o be_v from_o eternity_n 39_o i_o hope_v these_o overwise_a man_n will_v not_o say_v that_o man_n be_v bring_v forth_o by_o earth_n air_n water_n fi●e_n sun_n moon_n star_n or_o any_o such_o like_a weak_a mean_n as_o those_o be_v because_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n far_o exceed_v all_o such_o creature_n 40_o you_o may_v know_v that_o though_o those_o creature_n have_v life_n in_o they_o according_a to_o their_o kind_n yet_o man_n be_v a_o sensible_a live_a soul_n to_o itself_o and_o be_v capable_a in_o some_o measure_n to_o comprehend_v the_o nature_n of_o those_o creature_n aforesaid_a must_v of_o necessity_n be_v a_o more_o eminent_a live_v be_v then_o they_o all_o 41_o for_n alas_o you_o know_v though_o the_o sun_n fire_n water_n wind_n or_o air_n be_v powerful_a in_o their_o nature_n oft_o time_n destroy_v mankind_n yet_o when_o they_o have_v do_v it_o they_o be_v no_o way_n capable_a in_o themselves_o of_o any_o sensible_a joy_n or_o sorrow_n for_o what_o be_v do_v by_o they_o no_o more_o than_o the_o stone_n in_o the_o street_n 42_o therefore_o see_v all_o these_o ●_z be_v form_v for_o man_n use_n and_o be_v in_o measure_n know_v by_o man_n and_o yet_o be_v all_o uncapable_a of_o any_o sensible_a knowledge_n of_o themselves_o or_o of_o man_n either_o and_o see_v no_o man_n by_o his_o natural_a reason_n can_v perceive_v how_o any_o spirit_n bring_v forth_o its_o own_o body_n unto_o maturity_n neither_o how_o it_o by_o degree_n pass_v away_o into_o its_o dust_n or_o nonbeing_a again_o nor_o no_o creature_n worth_a name_n be_v ever_o see_v by_o man_n to_o have_v a_o beginning_n in_o any_o other_o way_n but_o that_o of_o generation_n only_o 43_o how_o can_v any_o ration_n i_o wise_a man_n possible_o imagine_v or_o think_v that_o man_n or_o any_o other_o live_v form_n ●hould_v ever_o appear_v to_o be_v without_o a_o glorious_a creator_n to_o give_v they_o their_o being_n at_o the_o first_o 44_o furthermore_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n can_v any_o of_o you_o be_v so_o weak_a after_o a_o sober_a consideration_n to_o imagine_v or_o think_v that_o a_o formless_a god_n give_v be_v to_o all_o these_o marvellous_a live_a form_n 45_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o that_o which_o have_v
if_o they_o acknowledge_v this_o rational_a truth_n without_o controversy_n when_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v eclipse_v from_o we_o it_o be_v through_o its_o near_a conjunction_n with_o the_o natural_a light_n or_o ruler_n of_o thing_n of_o the_o night_n 58_o and_o when_o the_o light_n of_o the_o moon_n be_v eclipse_v from_o we_o though_o it_o be_v in_o the_o night_n or_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n it_o be_v through_o her_o near_a 〈◊〉_d junction_n with_o the_o natural_a light_n or_o ruler_n of_o the_o day_n or_o a_o planetary_a fire_n answerable_a to_o his_o nature_n 59_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n as_o for_o the_o time_n and_o effect_n of_o eclipse_n i_o leave_v they_o unto_o the_o figurative_a merchant_n of_o a_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n which_o they_o right_o understand_v not_o because_o no_o man_n can_v true_o know_v they_o but_o by_o inspiration_n from_o he_o that_o make_v they_o chap._n viii_o 1_o of_o the_o heaven_n 2_o how_o many_o be_v create_v 3_o no_o more_o but_o three_o 1_o a_o throne_n of_o eternal_a ravish_a glory_n 2_o a_o throne_n of_o natural_a perish_a glory_n 3_o a_o invisible_a spiritual_a throne_n lead_v to_o eternity_n again_o if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o heavenly_a firmament_n create_v in_o all_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o three_o heaven_n in_o the_o scripture_n 2_o from_o that_o light_n which_o can_v lie_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o a_o three_o heaven_n in_o scripture_n that_o some_o man_n may_v be_v capable_a to_o declare_v unto_o his_o redeem_a one_o how_o many_o heaven_n there_o be_v and_o where_o those_o heaven_n be_v and_o what_o those_o heaven_n be_v 3_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n which_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v harken_v unto_o the_o pure_a light_n of_o life_n eternal_a there_o be_v three_o create_a heaven_n spo●en_v of_o in_o scripture_n record_n and_o no_o more_o no_o nor_o never_o be_v any_o more_o what_o ever_o vain_a man_n have_v imagine_v 4_o the_o first_o be_v that_o three_o heaven_n of_o visible_a and_o invisible_a ravish_a glory_n which_o be_v eternal_a this_o be_v that_o vast_a kingdom_n where_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mighty_a angel_n and_o glorify_a body_n of_o moses_n and_o elias_n do_v now_o inhabit_v behold_v the_o face_n of_o that_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n who_o divine_a nature_n unto_o his_o elect_a be_v crown_n of_o unutterable_a excellency_n 5_o this_o be_v that_o habitation_n three_o heaven_n throne_n or_o kingdom_n of_o ravish_a glory_n above_o the_o starry_a heaven_n speak_v of_o so_o frequent_o in_o scripture_n record_n which_o be_v needless_a to_o nominate_v unto_o you_o which_o be_v spiritual_a 6_o but_o lest_o some_o vain_a glorious_a man_n shall_v say_v whe●e_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o what_o i_o speak_v see_v the_o letter_n be_v their_o god_n who_o they_o adore_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o speak_v they_o therefore_o to_o stop_v their_o carnal_a mouth_n if_o it_o may_v be_v i_o shall_v write_v down_o two_o or_o three_o scripture_n record_n heaven_n be_v my_o throne_n and_o earth_n be_v my_o footstool_n act_v 7._o o_o god_n thy_o throne_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o heb._n 1_o that_o we_o have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n that_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o majesty_n in_o the_o heaven_n heb._n 8._o 7_o the_o second_o heaven_n which_o the_o lord_n create_v be_v not_o a_o spiritual_a but_o a_o natural_a therefore_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v fade_v away_o 8_o this_o heaven_n be_v this_o visible_a firmament_n adorn_v with_o majestical_a light_n above_o we_o and_o a_o fix_a earth_n beneath_o we_o beautify_v in_o its_o season_n with_o variety_n of_o delight_n which_o be_v nature_n only_o desire_v haven_n through_o the_o secret_a decree_n of_o the_o most_o wise_a god_n to_o manifest_v the_o variety_n of_o his_o most_o infinite_a wisdom_n unto_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n in_o the_o create_v of_o such_o natural_a glory_n to_o perish_v and_o the_o angelical_a merciless_a ruler_n thereof_o after_o they_o have_v enjoy_v their_o momentary_a glory_n 9_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o cite_v two_o or_o three_o scripture_n as_o a_o visible_a testimony_n to_o this_o second_o heaven_n also_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n 10_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n you_o know_v that_o there_o can_v not_o be_v any_o beginning_n unto_o the_o creator_n therefore_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o say_n do_v include_v that_o immortal_a throne_n above_o and_o this_o mortal_a world_n beneath_o as_o have_v a_o beginning_n be_v speak_v for_o the_o capacity_n unto_o man_n or_o angel_n which_o know_v their_o be_v be_v from_o another_o and_o understand_v also_o their_o continuance_n in_o those_o several_a heaven_n for_o a_o time_n or_o for_o eternity_n 11_o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o thou_o lord_n in_o the_o begin_n have_v establish_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o do_v remain_v and_o they_o shall_v wax_v old_a as_o do_v a_o garment_n 12_o again_o the_o three_o and_o last_o create_v heaven_n be_v that_o within_o the_o body_n of_o man_n or_o the_o first_o man_n adam_n the_o which_o spiritual_a creation_n be_v in_o natural_a body_n and_o within_o this_o perish_a globe_n it_o be_v make_v capable_a through_o its_o union_n with_o changeable_a nature_n to_o enter_v into_o mortality_n that_o by_o the_o most_o secreet_a decree_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n after_o a_o moment_n taste_v of_o silent_a death_n as_o he_o himself_o do_v it_o may_v quicken_v again_o through_o death_n itself_o spiritual_a body_n full_a of_o divine_a glory_n that_o as_o one_o man_n natural_o as_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n all_o the_o elect_a may_v as_o swift_a as_o think_v ascend_v to_o meet_v their_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o with_o his_o divine_a person_n of_o bright_a burn_a glory_n enter_v into_o that_o prepare_a throne_n of_o eternal_a pleasure_n 13_o this_o create_v or_o inspire_v light_n in_o man_n you_o know_v have_v variety_n of_o scripture-expression_n for_o the_o set_n forth_o its_o excellency_n that_o it_o shall_v enjoy_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v as_o namely_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v within_o you_o christ_n in_o you_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n know_v you_o not_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n it_o be_v a_o true_a say_n for_o if_o we_o be_v create_v together_o with_o he_o we_o also_o shall_v live_v together_o with_o he_o 2_o tim._n 2_o thus_o god_n create_v the_o man_n in_o his_o image_n in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n create_v he_o he_o he_o create_v they_o male_a and_o female_a gen._n 1._o 14_o thus_o brief_o i_o have_v touch_v upon_o the_o three_o create_a heaven_n nominate_v in_o the_o literal_a record_n unto_o a_o invisible_a yet_o visible_a infinite_a be_v of_o all_o finite_a being_n bless_v for_o ever_o viz._n a_o throne_n of_o eternal_a ravish_a glory_n second_o a_o throne_n of_o natural_a perish_a glory_n last_o a_o invisible_a spiritual_a throne_n lead_v they_o to_o eternity_n 15_o from_o that_o spiritual_a majesty_n by_o who_o be_v form_v the_o heaven_n aforesaid_a and_o all_o in_o they_o i_o positive_o affirm_v against_o all_o mortal_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v that_o though_o man_n have_v write_v or_o shall_v speak_v of_o more_o world_n than_o what_o be_v forewritten_a those_o additional_a heaven_n proceed_v from_o their_o own_o imaginary_a confuse_a reason_n and_o not_o from_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o all_o heavenly_a order_n chap._n ix_o a_o exact_a scripture_n rule_v to_o prove_v the_o man_n christ_n glorify_v to_o be_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n in_o one_o distinct_a person_n my_o belove_a brethren_n which_o desire_v a_o right_a understanding_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n in_o scripture_n record_n take_v special_a notice_n of_o this_o one_o thing_n and_o you_o can_v be_v deceive_v by_o all_o the_o wisdom_n or_o subtlety_n of_o man_n 2_o i_o say_v again_o from_o the_o lord_n take_v good_a notice_n of_o those_o scripture_n which_o speak_v positive_o concern_v god_n or_o the_o high_a heaven_n or_o angel_n or_o eternal_a life_n or_o eternal_a death_n or_o of_o a_o natural_a heaven_n and_o all_o mortal_a thing_n within_o its_o orb_n why_o because_o you_o may_v know_v that_o all_o privative_a scripture_n though_o never_o so_o eminent_a or_o numerous_a whole_o depend_v upon_o positive_a scripture_n 3_o my_o dear_a brethren_n for_o who_o my_o soul_n be_v in_o continual_a travel_n until_o the_o pure_a truth_n be_v root_v in_o you_o some_o of_o you_o be_v weak_a of_o comprehension_n i_o shall_v
the_o mind_n of_o christ_n from_o john_n word_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 11._o chapter_n the_o first_o word_n be_v these_o then_o be_v give_v i_o a_o reed_n like_o unto_o a_o rod_n and_o the_o angel_n stand_v by_o say_v rise_v and_o measure_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o they_o that_o worship_n therein_o but_o the_o court_n which_o be_v without_o the_o temple_n leave_v out_o and_o measure_v it_o not_o for_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o holy_a city_n shall_v they_o tread_v under_o foot_n forty_o and_o two_o month_n 21_o my_o divine_a friend_n you_o may_v understand_v that_o that_o reed_n like_o unto_o a_o rod_n possess_v by_o john_n be_v a_o free_a gift_n of_o inspiration_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o a_o glorify_a christ_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n by_o his_o angel_n whereby_o like_a unto_o a_o skilful_a land-measure_a his_o understanding_n be_v enable_v to_o comprehend_v the_o spiritual_a signification_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o they_o that_o worship_n therein_o 22_o you_o may_v also_o understand_v that_o the_o temple_n and_o they_o that_o do_v worship_n therein_o do_v signify_v god_n spiritual_a house_n or_o tabernacle_n of_o elect_a jew_n and_o gentile_n which_o make_v but_o one_o complete_a body_n for_o christ_n jesus_n their_o head_n to_o reign_v in_o by_o his_o heavenly_a light_n 23_o that_o altar_n speak_v of_o by_o john_n do_v signify_v the_o glorious_a body_n or_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n unto_o which_o divine_a altar_n or_o godhead_n person_n those_o spiritual_a worshipper_n be_v virtual_o unite_v by_o a_o receive_a light_n from_o that_o infinite_a majesty_n through_o which_o invisible_a intercourse_n sometime_o their_o soul_n be_v full_a of_o spiritual_a joy_n through_o that_o inward_a seal_n of_o godlike_a glory_n which_o they_o be_v to_o enjoy_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 24_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o that_o unmeasured_a court_n without_o the_o temple_n do_v signify_v the_o visible_a scripture_n 25_o you_o know_v that_o when_o sacrifice_n or_o ordinance_n be_v in_o force_n at_o jerusalem_n there_o be_v the_o inward_a temple_n and_o outward_a porch_n or_o court_n join_v to_o the_o temple_n 26_o you_o also_o know_v the_o court_n without_o the_o temple_n be_v a_o common_a place_n for_o all_o people_n to_o meet_v in_o but_o none_o may_v enter_v into_o the_o inward_a temple_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o worship_n but_o the_o chief_a priest_n or_o those_o that_o be_v confessor_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o approve_v of_o by_o those_o teacher_n of_o the_o law_n 27_o likewise_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o outward_a court_n or_o scripture_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n that_o be_v leave_v unmeasured_a or_o cast_v out_o do_v signify_v all_o the_o outcast_a unbelieving_a jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o the_o inward_a temple_n or_o spirit_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v signify_v all_o the_o elect_a believe_v jew_n and_o gentile_n in_o that_o glorious_a altar_n beforesaid_a 28_o again_o you_o know_v that_o the_o court_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v a_o outward_a ornament_n or_o witness_n unto_o the_o beauty_n or_o glory_n within_o the_o temple_n 29_o so_o likewise_o the_o court_n of_o the_o visible_a scripture_n be_v a_o ornament_n or_o testimony_n unto_o that_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o all_o truth_n within_o the_o temple_n body_n or_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n and_o virtual_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n live_v in_o the_o temple_n or_o body_n of_o his_o elect_a that_o be_v enable_v to_o give_v a_o true_a distinction_n between_o the_o thing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o eternal_a death_n 30_o again_o you_o know_v it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o unmeasured_a court_n without_o the_o temple_n be_v give_v to_o the_o gentile_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v tread_v the_o holy_a city_n under_o foot_n two_o and_o forty_o month_n 31_o you_o spiritual_a one_o may_v know_v that_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o those_o word_n be_v this_o that_o to_o fulfil_v the_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o jew_n their_o temple_n and_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o roman_n through_o conquest_n they_o shall_v possess_v the_o literal_a record_n write_v by_o the_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a jew_n and_o not_o only_o worship_v it_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n but_o also_o by_o cruel_a persecution_n for_o above_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n be_v to_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o holy_a city_n of_o spiritual_a jew_n and_o gentile_n that_o can_v not_o bow_v down_o unto_o their_o invention_n 32_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o the_o roman_a gentile_n here_o speak_v of_o by_o john_n be_v those_o people_n which_o man_n call_v cavalier_n who_o princely_a race_n spring_v first_o from_o the_o loin_n of_o king_n herod_n that_o bloody_a persecutor_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n and_o so_o stream_v into_o the_o line_n of_o the_o tyrannical_a roman_a empire_n or_o popedom_n 33_o from_o this_o papal_a power_n whatever_o apostical_a or_o christian_a stile_n they_o attribute_v to_o themselves_o through_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n so_o call_v they_o have_v band_v together_o as_o one_o man_n to_o tread_v underfoot_o as_o beforesaid_a that_o choose_a city_n of_o heavenly_a mind_a jew_n and_o gentile_n 34_o because_o their_o innocent_a soul_n can_v not_o forsake_v that_o everliving_a altar_n manifest_v unto_o they_o and_o bow_v down_o to_o their_o egyptian_n calf_n set_v up_o as_o a_o snare_n unto_o the_o people_n chief_o for_o fleshly_a gain_n and_o perish_a glory_n from_o man_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n 35_o also_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a take_v special_a notice_n of_o this_o that_o these_o two_o witness_n or_o prophet_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o 11._o of_o the_o revelation_n do_v not_o appear_v unto_o man_n until_o the_o gentile_a power_n of_o persecute_v bishop_n be_v extinguish_v in_o this_o land_n 36_o but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v by_o some_o that_o one_o bull_n and_o varnum_n and_o other_o long_o before_o they_o have_v pretend_v to_o be_v these_o two_o witness_n and_o yet_o it_o come_v to_o nothing_o 37_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v by_o way_n of_o query_n can_v any_o man_n make_v it_o appear_v from_o any_o record_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n that_o in_o any_o land_n or_o nation_n two_o man_n do_v ever_o bear_v witness_n in_o all_o opposition_n of_o all_o man_n or_o angel_n unto_o the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n glorify_v to_o be_v the_o only_a god_n everlasting_a father_n and_o creator_n of_o both_o world_n angel_n and_o man_n 38_o again_o among_o all_o the_o pretend_a prophet_n in_o the_o world_n do_v any_o of_o they_o bear_v witness_n unto_o one_o personal_a majesty_n distinct_a from_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n and_o man_n 39_o nay_o of_o the_o contrary_a do_v they_o not_o all_o rather_o disow_v such_o a_o god_n as_o a_o weak_a or_o carnal_a thing_n and_o as_o one_o man_n like_o unto_o baal_n four_o hundred_o priest_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n and_o priest_n in_o all_o age_n imagine_v the_o creator_n to_o be_v a_o infinite_a formless_a spirit_n 40_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v moderate_o inquire_v of_o the_o pretend_a prophet_n or_o spiritual_a light_n in_o this_o age_n concern_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n or_o a_o glory_n to_o come_v be_v there_o any_o answer_n to_o be_v have_v from_o they_o but_o this_o or_o such_o like_a the_o creator_n be_v a_o infinite_a invisible_a unchangeable_a eternal_a spirit_n or_o else_o they_o will_v say_v the_o creator_n be_v all_o wisdom_n love_n purity_n riches_n beauty_n joy_n righteousness_n justice_n or_o divine_a excellency_n he_o fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n he_o be_v the_o all_o in_o all_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o beside_o he_o or_o else_o they_o will_v say_v the_o more_o you_o desire_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n the_o less_o you_o will_v know_v of_o he_o because_o he_o be_v infinite_a or_o they_o will_v bid_v you_o mind_n that_o god_n or_o choist_a within_o you_o and_o trouble_v not_o yourself_o about_o incomprehensible_a infiniteness_n thus_o these_o false_a prophet_n of_o curse_a cain_n make_v a_o wonderment_n of_o a_o infinite_a creator_n of_o nothing_o but_o mere_a word_n only_o 41_o thou_o which_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o such_o a_o creator_n as_o this_o be_v shall_v one_o day_n know_v to_o thy_o eternal_a sorrow_n and_o shame_n what_o it_o be_v to_o despise_v a_o personal_a god_n infinite_o full_a of_o all_o glorious_a perfection_n 42_o when_o this_o personal_a majesty_n shall_v show_v his_o infinite_a power_n upon_o thou_o through_o the_o retain_v of_o his_o inshining_a light_n from_o thy_o lucephe●ian_a spirlt_n and_o shall_v leave_v thou_o and_o thy_o inward_a god_n in_o a_o unspeakable_a condition_n of_o eternal_a shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o sell_a and_o
39_o though_o the_o woman_n eve_n through_o the_o permission_n of_o god_n be_v first_o guilty_a of_o the_o transgression_n of_o lust_n and_o so_o tempt_v her_o innocent_a husband_n to_o lie_v with_o she_o to_o cover_v her_o folly_n if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a yet_o because_o her_o soul_n be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o its_o creation_n as_o adam_n be_v you_o may_v know_v that_o that_o carnal_a desire_n in_o she_o towards_o her_o husband_n proceed_v not_o from_o her_o own_o divine_a purity_n but_o from_o the_o rational_a nature_n of_o the_o unclean_a serpent_n within_o she_o as_o i_o shall_v clear_o demonstrate_v when_o i_o come_v to_o trout_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o her_o be_v overcome_v by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o that_o angelical_a serpent_n 40_o thus_o though_o the_o body_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v both_o natural_a and_o so_o be_v capable_a of_o luft_n to_o bring_v forth_o generation_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o secret_a wisdom_n of_o god_n see_v it_o most_o fit_a that_o neither_o adam_n nor_o eve_n shall_v be_v first_o capable_a to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o desire_v after_o carnal_a copulation_n from_o their_o own_o divine_a spirit_n but_o from_o that_o serpentine_a unclean_a spirit_n that_o enter_v into_o the_o body_n of_o eve_n 41_o so_o much_o at_o present_a why_o god_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n according_a to_o our_o likeness_n and_o what_o that_o image_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o create_v of_o man_n chap._n xxxi_o 1_o of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n 2_o of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n 3_o how_o sin_n come_v into_o man_n nature_n 4_o no_o angel_n cast_v out_o of_o heaven_n but_o that_o one_o which_o deceive_v eve_n 5_o no_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o two_o seed_n 6_o no_o speech_n can_v proceed_v from_o any_o but_o from_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v write_v of_o the_o angelical_a serpent_n and_o of_o he_o manner_n of_o his_o beguile_n of_o innocent_a eve_n 2_o in_o the_o 12_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o the_o great_a dragon_n that_o old_a serpent_n call_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n be_v cast_v ou●_n which_o deceive_v all_o the_o world_n he_o be_v cast_v out_o into_o the_o earth_n and_o his_o angel_n be_v cast_v out_o with_o he_o see_v the_o scripture_n make_v mention_n of_o a_o old_a serpent_n dragon_n devil_n and_o his_o angel_n some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o be_v there_o many_o angel_n cast_v from_o heaven_n into_o the_o earth_n together_o or_o but_o one_o only_a and_o if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o or_o many_o where_o be_v those_o angel_n now_o become_v 3_o from_o a_o divine_a gift_n receive_v from_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o man_n adam_n cast_v out_o of_o his_o heavenly_a paradise_n of_o create_a purity_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o all_o his_o generation_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o their_o spiritual_a peace_n with_o he_o 4_o so_o likewise_o there_o be_v but_o one_o angelical_a serpent_n cast_v from_o his_o create_a rational_a purity_n and_o that_o be_v that_o serpent_n devil_n which_o deceive_v eve_n 5_o the_o angel_n which_o be_v cast_v out_o with_o he_o be_v of_o his_o seed_n or_o generation_n through_o his_o union_n with_o the_o entrail_n of_o eve_n as_o i_o shall_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n 6_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n because_o my_o soul_n desire_v your_o perfection_n as_o my_o own_o 7_o therefore_o will_v i_o glad_o have_v you_o possess_v with_o a_o infallible_a understanding_n between_o michael_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o the_o dragon_n and_o his_o angel_n or_o between_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n why_o because_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o two_o distinct_a seed_n son_n or_o generation_n depend_v a_o general_a understanding_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o scripture_n 8_o wherefore_o in_o the_o 2._o of_o genesis_n you_o shall_v find_v it_o thus_o write_v but_o of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n thou_o shall_v not_o eat_v of_o it_o for_o in_o the_o day_n that_o thou_o eat_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n 9_o if_o you_o look_v in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o genesis_n with_o a_o spiritual_a eye_n than_o you_o may_v clear_o see_v what_o that_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n do_v signify_v the_o word_n be_v these_o then_o the_o serpent_n say_v to_o the_o woman_n you_o shall_v not_o die_v at_o all_o but_o god_n do_v know_v that_o when_o you_o shall_v eat_v thereof_o your_o eye_n shall_v be_v open_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v as_o god_n know_v good_a and_o evil_n so_o the_o woman_n see_v that_o the_o tree_n be_v good_a for_o meat_n and_o that_o it_o be_v pleasant_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o a_o tree_n to_o be_v desire_v to_o make_v one_o wise_a take_v of_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o and_o do_v eat_v and_o give_v also_o to_o her_o husband_n with_o she_o and_o he_o do_v eat_v 10_o my_o elect_a spiritual_a brethren_n you_o know_v it_o be_v a_o general_a opinion_n among_o learned_a man_n that_o the_o serpent_n which_o appear_v unto_o eve_n be_v one_o of_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n which_o the_o lord_n god_n have_v make_v 11_o and_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o invisible_a spirit_n which_o enter_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o speak_v those_o subtle_a speech_n through_o his_o mouth_n 12_o and_o so_o cause_v the_o woman_n to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o a_o natural_a tree_n which_o the_o lord_n god_n have_v forbid_v and_o tempt_v her_o husband_n to_o eat_v of_o that_o fruit_n with_o she_o it_o operate_v that_o venomous_a evil_n in_o they_o and_o all_o mankind_n 13_o behold_v the_o gross_a darkness_n abide_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o perish_a world_n 14_o you_o know_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v general_o express_v in_o natural_a term_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n to_o the_o weak_a comprehension_n of_o sinful_a mortal_n 15_o and_o natural_a wise_a man_n will_v persuade_v man_n to_o understand_v they_o exact_o in_o the_o letter_n because_o they_o measure_v the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o eternity_n by_o their_o rational_a learning_n only_o as_o beforesaid_a 16_o in_o scripture_n record_v you_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v call_v a_o lion_n a_o lamb_n a_o stone_n a_o door_n a_o way_n a_o vine_n a_o green_a tree_n and_o such_o like_a expression_n in_o reference_n unto_o spiritual_a meaning_n 17_o also_o you_o know_v that_o evil_a mind_a man_n be_v sometime_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o devil_n dragon_n viper_n serpent_n fruitless-tree_n and_o such_o like_a according_a to_o that_o of_o john_n the_o baptist_n when_o he_o say_v now_o the_o axe_n be_v lay_v unto_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n every_o tree_n therefore_o that_o bring_v not_o forth_o good_a fruit_n be_v hew_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n 18_o so_o likewise_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o that_o angelical_a reprobate_n by_o who_o eve_n be_v deceive_v be_v call_v a_o dragon_n a_o old_a serpent_n the_o devil_n and_o satan_n a_o deceiver_n or_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n and_o such_o like_a name_n suitable_a unto_o his_o curse_a nature_n 19_o but_o the_o very_a truth_n be_v this_o that_o serpent_n that_o tempt_v eve_n be_v that_o angelical_a dragon_n devil_n beforesaid_a which_o the_o lord_n god_n from_o the_o high_a heaven_n cast_v down_o to_o the_o low_a earth_n 20_o and_o it_o be_v his_o seem_a divine_a wisdom_n and_o angelical_a person_n that_o bewitch_v eve_n innocent_o soul_n to_o hearken_v unto_o he_o and_o her_o eye_n to_o dote_v upon_o he_o 21_o for_o you_o know_v that_o eve_n have_v three_o consideration_n in_o she_o before_o she_o be_v overcome_v to_o consent_v unto_o the_o serpent_n language_n 22_o first_o the_o tree_n be_v good_a for_o meat_n second_o it_o be_v pleasant_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o three_o it_o be_v a_o tree_n to_o be_v desire_v to_o make_v one_o wise_a chap._n xxxii_o 1_o the_o condition_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n in_o their_o fall_n 2_o the_o angel_n call_v a_o serpent_n 3_o he_o be_v more_o comely_a in_o eve_n eye_n than_o adam_n 4_o how_o the_o fall_a angel_n become_v flesh_n 5_o how_o god_n become_v flesh_n before_o i_o write_v of_o the_o three_o secret_n hide_v in_o the_o angelical_a temptation_n i_o shall_v speak_v a_o little_a of_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o secret_a wisdom_n of_o god_n to_o his_o choose_a one_o 2_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o in_o the_o divine_a will_n of_o the_o infinite_a majesty_n be_v a_o
a_o divine_a looking-glass_n or_o the_o three_o and_o last_o testament_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o personal_a residence_n be_v seat_v on_o his_o throne_n of_o eternal_a glory_n in_o another_o world_n be_v the_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n agree_v with_o and_o explain_v of_o the_o two_o former_a commission_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n differ_v only_o in_o point_n of_o worship_n set_a forth_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o suppose_a spiritual_a light_n in_o the_o world_n until_o the_o everliving_a true_a jesus_n the_o only_a high_a and_o mighty_a god_n personal_o appear_v in_o the_o air_n with_o his_o saint_n and_o angel_n by_o john_n reeve_n and_o lodowick_n muggleton_n penman_n hereof_o and_o the_o last_o choose_v witness_n unto_o that_o everblessed_n body_n of_o christ_n jesus_n glorify_v to_o be_v the_o only_a wise_a very_o true_a god_n alone_o everlasting_a father_n and_o creator_n of_o both_o world_n and_o all_o that_o be_v make_v in_o they_o even_o so_o come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o to_o testify_v and_o fulfil_v thy_o own_o promise_n in_o thy_o record_n of_o truth_n that_o thy_o redeem_v once_o may_v real_o know_v that_o thou_o have_v seat_v we_o and_o be_v that_o unchangeable_a god_n which_o can_v possible_o lie_v though_o million_o of_o unredeemed_a mankind_n thereby_o shall_v everlasting_o perish_v print_a in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1656._o and_o since_o review_v by_o and_o reprint_v for_o lodowick_n muggleton_n one_o of_o the_o say_a witness_n dwell_v in_o great_a trinity-lane_n in_o london_n near_o ●he_v sign_n of_o the_o lion_n and_o the_o lamb_n where_o this_o book_n be_v to_o be_v have_v 1661._o to_o the_o spiritual_a discern_a reader_n my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n in_o who_o be_v root_v and_o real_o ground_v the_o save_a light_n of_o life_n eternal_a i_o know_v that_o the_o manifold_a break_n forth_o of_o seem_v glorious_a appearance_n in_o this_o age_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v hide_v from_o your_o eye_n also_o you_o know_v that_o the_o true_a light_n of_o life_n have_v almost_o discover_v they_o all_o to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o very_a depth_n of_o man_n serpentine_a subtlety_n cloak_v over_o with_o the_o divine_a title_n of_o the_o most_o infinite_a and_o holy_a god_n so_o that_o man_n glitter_a language_n now_o be_v of_o no_o value_n unto_o you_o unless_o the_o holy_a spirit_n bear_v witness_n unto_o your_o spirit_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v unto_o they_o from_o heaven_n neither_o can_v man_n blind_v your_o eye_n with_o their_o natural_a miracle_n artificial_a juggle_n sophistical_a sign_n and_o wonder_n to_o cause_v you_o ever_o the_o soon_o for_o that_o to_o receive_v they_o as_o immediate_o send_v forth_o by_o the_o everliving_a god_n i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o lofty_a word_n of_o imaginary_a voice_n vision_n dream_n revelation_n variety_n of_o language_n declaration_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o height_n and_o depth_n of_o perish_a nature_n pretend_a jerusalem_n journey_n suppose_v see_v of_o spiritual_a angel_n with_o eye_n of_o natural_a flesh_n and_o familiar_a converse_v with_o they_o and_o know_v the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a angel_n in_o glory_n and_o every_o man_n protect_a angel_n in_o this_o world_n or_o any_o such_o like_a carnal_a fancy_n can_v blind_v your_o eye_n any_o more_o which_o have_v receive_v from_o above_o a_o distinguish_a gift_n between_o the_o thing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o death_n not_o only_o from_o its_o effect_n but_o from_o its_o first_o cause_n also_o my_o select_a brethren_n unto_o a_o pure_a light_n language_n and_o life_n from_o the_o very_a true_a god_n i_o certain_o know_v that_o nothing_o in_o this_o world_n will_v satisfy_v your_o hungry_a soul_n but_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n which_o be_v eternal_a in_o that_o world_n to_o come_v therefore_o unto_o you_o alone_o which_o look_v not_o after_o gild_a word_n but_o glorious_a thing_n present_v i_o this_o epistle_n from_o that_o spirit_n which_o can_v neither_o deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v by_o man_n nor_o angel_n wherefore_o if_o any_o sober_a man_n of_o a_o quick_a comprehension_n shall_v suppose_v that_o this_o write_n may_v have_v be_v compose_v into_o few_o word_n than_o be_v here_o insert_v i_o hope_v he_o shall_v wise_o consider_v that_o thing_n of_o such_o concernment_n require_v more_o word_n then_o ordinary_a not_o only_o for_o inform_v and_o confirm_v of_o the_o simple_a saint_n but_o also_o for_o confound_v of_o the_o subtle_a serpent_n of_o this_o age._n moreover_o you_o that_o peruse_v this_o epistle_n which_o be_v of_o a_o unjudging_a tender_a spirit_n may_v also_o know_v that_o before_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n in_o christ_n jesus_n become_v my_o minister_n i_o be_v very_o weak_a in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o learned_a man_n opinion_n their_o dispute_n or_o write_n concern_v heavenly_a thing_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o they_o and_o reveal_v unto_o unlearned_a babe_n therefore_o the_o chief_a desire_n of_o my_o soul_n be_v that_o it_o may_v be_v manifest_v unto_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n whether_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o epistle_n proceed_v from_o my_o own_o carnal_a spirit_n or_o from_o the_o most_o pure_a and_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n himself_o i_o mean_v that_o one_o personal_a glorious_a majesty_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o divine_a nature_n both_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v crown_n of_o immortal_a ravish_a excellency_n in_o all_o his_o elect_a at_o the_o great_a and_o dreadful_a day_n of_o eternal_a burn_a vengeance_n upon_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o all_o bloody-minded_a impenitent_a persecutor_n that_o ever_o be_v bear_v john_n reeve_n another_o epistle_n annex_v to_o this_o book_n my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n who_o be_v or_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v real_o ground_v in_o the_o true_a doctrine_n which_o be_v hold_v forth_o in_o the_o three_o commission_n namely_o the_o commission_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n 2_o of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o the_o apostle_n 3_o of_o the_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o commission_n be_v now_o extant_a in_o the_o world_n though_o not_o accompany_v with_o visible_a sign_n and_o natural_a miracle_n as_o the_o other_o two_o commission_n have_v in_o their_o time_n when_o their_o commission_n be_v in_o be_v yet_o this_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o last_o commission_n that_o god_n will_v ever_o send_v into_o this_o world_n while_o time_n be_v no_o more_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n have_v the_o only_a interpretation_n of_o the_o two_o former_a commission_n for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n at_o this_o day_n let_v he_o be_v of_o what_o sect_n or_o opinion_n soever_o that_o do_v true_o know_v any_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n only_o notwithstanding_o they_o labour_v so_o much_o after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o yet_o for_o wan●_n of_o a_o commission_n from_o god_n they_o have_v no_o true_a understanding_n of_o any_o one_o principal_a or_o true_a ground_n of_o faith_n for_o all_o that_o they_o do_v of_o that_o nature_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o very_a strength_n of_o reason_n and_o reason_n can_v never_o true_o know_v the_o deep_a thing_n of_o eternity_n because_o there_o be_v no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n at_o this_o day_n that_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n his_o form_n and_o nature_n the_o right_a devil_n his_o form_n and_o nature_n but_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n only_o therefore_o when_o god_n speak_v these_o word_n unto_o john_n reeve_n say_v i_o have_v give_v thou_o understanding_n of_o my_o mind_n in_o the_o scripture_n above_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n also_o god_n do_v say_v at_o the_o same_o time_n i_o have_v give_v thou_o lodowick_n muggleton_n to_o be_v thy_o mouth_n so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o have_v give_v we_o two_o to_o understand_v more_o of_o his_o mind_n in_o the_o scripture_n than_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n do_v at_o this_o day_n that_o be_v more_o spiritual_a knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n than_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n because_o god_n have_v choose_v we_o two_o to_o be_v his_o last_o commissionated_a prophet_n and_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o declare_v and_o make_v know_v unto_o the_o seed_n of_o faith_n those_o great_a mystery_n which_o have_v lie_v hide_v in_o the_o breast_n of_o god_n ever_o since_o the_o foundation_n of_o this_o world_n be_v lay_v and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o commission_n be_v in_o some_o measure_n make_v manifest_a unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n by_o some_o part_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n as_o those_o commission_n aforesaid_a namely_o moses_n and_o jesus_n but_o now_o
in_o this_o last_o age_n be_v the_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v to_o finish_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n accord_v to_o that_o say_n of_o john_n rev._n 10._o and_o 7._o where_o it_o be_v say_v but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n when_o he_o shall_v begin_v to_o sound_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v finish_v as_o he_o have_v declare_v to_o his_o servant_n the_o prophet_n and_o now_o this_o mystery_n of_o god_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o world_n by_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n both_o in_o our_o discourse_n and_o write_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v clear_a to_o you_o that_o be_v capable_a to_o understand_v and_o to_o comprehend_v those_o deep_a and_o high_a mystery_n which_o h●th_v be_v declare_v by_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n both_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o pen_n wherein_o we_o have_v unfold_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o right_a devil_n with_o the_o person_n of_o angel_n and_o their_o nature_n with_o many_o other_o sacred_a mystery_n which_o never_o be_v reveal_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n until_o this_o last_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o two_o seed_n be_v these_o two_o key_n which_o do_v open_a or_o unlock_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o hell_n that_o be_v they_o know_v what_o the_o commission_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n be_v and_o how_o far_o a_o man_n be_v free_v from_o the_o visible_a worship_n of_o his_o commission_n which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n also_o we_o know_v what_o the_o other_o commission_n of_o jesus_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v and_o how_o far_o a_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o observe_v the_o visible_a worship_n which_o be_v set_v up_o in_o their_o time_n which_o be_v then_o in_o great_a force_n so_o long_o as_o that_o commission_n stand_v but_o when_o god_n do_v give_v a_o new_a commission_n the_o old_a be_v make_v void_a as_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o visible_a worship_n which_o be_v set_v up_o by_o a_o commission_n therefore_o you_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n commission_n do_v whole_o thrust_v out_o the_o visible_a worship_n which_o be_v set_v up_o by_o moses_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n say_v unto_o peter_n i_o have_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o hell_n that_o be_v thou_o shall_v be_v a_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o so_o thou_o shall_v open_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n unto_o all_o those_o that_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o declaration_n also_o thou_o shall_v have_v the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o mo●es_n which_o shall_v open_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n unto_o all_o those_o persecute_v jew_n which_o be_v under_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o commission_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v in_o be_v so_o likewise_o it_o be_v w●th_v this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spiri●_n do_v hold_v forth_o no_o visible_a nor_o external_a outward_a worship_n as_o the_o other_o two_o commission_n do_v but_o as_o it_o be_v the_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o outward_a nor_o visible_a worship_n to_o be_v use_v in_o it_o but_o that_o invisible_a and_o spiritual_a worship_n only_o which_o be_v to_o worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n which_o spiritual_a worship_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o right_a devil_n upon_o which_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o other_o two_o commission_n both_o stand_v upon_o which_o no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n at_o this_o day_n do_v or_o can_v know_v but_o this_o commission_n of_o the_o spirit_n only_o and_o those_o which_o come_v to_o understand_v and_o to_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o commission_n much_o more_o may_v be_v say_v in_o this_o thing_n but_o it_o will_v be_v too_o large_a a_o epistle_n therefore_o my_o counsel_n and_o advice_n unto_o you_o that_o do_v believe_v or_o shall_v come_v to_o believe_v in_o this_o last_o spiritual_a commission_n be_v that_o you_o will_v serious_o read_v and_o peruse_v this_o book_n call_v a_o divine_a looking-glass_n though_o it_o have_v be_v much_o slight_v and_o disregard_v because_o of_o the_o abuse_n that_o it_o do_v receive_v in_o the_o press_n yet_o there_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o the_o most_o high_a mystery_n of_o all_o which_o have_v not_o be_v reveal_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v until_o now_o but_o i_o have_v occasion_n for_o to_o reprint_v it_o again_o have_v read_v it_o over_o with_o much_o serious_a deliberation_n and_o find_v in_o it_o such_o variety_n of_o matter_n with_o such_o deep_a profound_a mystery_n which_o can_v not_o be_v declare_v but_o by_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o john_n reeve_n so_o that_o i_o hope_v that_o you_o that_o have_v receive_v some_o light_n in_o your_o understanding_n concern_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o right_a devil_n upon_o the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o do_v depend_v many_o other_o heavenly_a mystery_n which_o be_v treat_v upon_o in_o this_o book_n which_o i_o do_v desire_n and_o shall_v be_v glad_a that_o you_o may_v increase_v and_o grow_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o so_o that_o you_o may_v be_v satisfy_v in_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n while_o you_o be_v here_o and_o your_o knowledge_n perfect_v in_o glory_n hereafter_o by_o lodowick_n muggleton_n the_o printer_n to_o the_o reader_n courteous_a reader_n there_o be_v but_o few_o error_n in_o this_o book_n by_o the_o mistake_n of_o the_o press_n and_o therefore_o not_o worth_a the_o recite_v of_o every_o particular_a literal_a fault_n i_o shall_v only_o advertise_v thou_o of_o some_o escape_n which_o may_v perhaps_o impede_fw-la the_o sense_n viz._n chap_n 18._o ver_fw-la 31._o read_v without_o chap._n 33._o ver_fw-la 5._o for_o of_o read_z or_o chap._n 38._o ver_fw-la 37._o for_o visible_a read_v invisible_a chap._n 39_o ver_fw-la 33._o for_o impossible_o read_v impossible_a these_o be_v the_o most_o material_a you_o be_v desire_v to_o correct_v with_o the_o pen_n the_o other_o every_o ordinary_a capacity_n may_v understand_v without_o amendment_n farewell_o a_o divine_a look_a glass_n chap._n i._n 1_o from_o whence_o all_o write_n proceed_v 2_o a_o necessity_n of_o extraordinary_a light_n to_o satisfy_v or_o silence_v curious_a question_n 3_o the_o name_n of_o the_o two_o last_o witness_n and_o the_o time_n of_o their_o call_n 4_o the_o high_a query_n concern_v the_o eternal_a estate_n of_o mankind_n 5_o of_o the_o form_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n from_o all_o eternity_n who_o continual_o increase_v 6_o the_o person_n of_o god_n be_v the_o object_n of_o true_a faith_n 7_o no_o reason_n in_o god_n 8_o the_o pure_a reason_n in_o man_n can_v understand_v the_o scripture_n my_o belove_a brethren_n you_o know_v that_o all_o speaking_n or_o writing_n be_v either_o natural_a or_o spiritual_a and_o that_o of_o necessity_n they_o proceed_v from_o their_o several_a head_n of_o divine_a inspiration_n or_o humane_a imagination_n 2_o moreover_o 〈◊〉_d know_v also_o that_o a_o man_n have_v need_n be_v endue_v with_o a_o extraordinary_a light_n to_o satisfy_v or_o silence_v curious_a question_n concern_v thing_n which_o be_v eternal_a 3_o dear_a friend_n i_o john_n reeve_n be_v a_o poor_a layman_n so_o call_v upon_o a_o declaration_n that_o the_o most_o high_a from_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n speak_v unto_o i_o in_o the_o year_n 1651._o you_o may_v be_v sure_a since_o that_o the_o propound_v of_o nice_a question_n have_v not_o be_v want_v unto_o i_o and_o my_o spiritual_a companion_n lodowick_n muggleton_n both_o from_o the_o strong_a and_o the_o weak_a 4_o among_o the_o rest_n not_o many_o month_n past_a a_o friend_n of_o my_o be_v somewhat_o trouble_v in_o mind_n be_v move_v to_o propound_v these_o high_a query_n whether_o any_o creature_n be_v form_v of_o purpose_n for_o eternal_a suffering_n or_o whether_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v as_o advantageous_a for_o the_o creator_n glory_n to_o have_v form_v all_o creature_n for_o eternal_a happiness_n as_o otherwise_o or_o if_o any_o creature_n be_v make_v to_o be_v a_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n to_o show_v forth_o the_o prerogative_n royal_a of_o its_o creator_n wherein_o be_v that_o creature_n blame-worthy_a of_o sin_n or_o evil_n which_o through_o a_o secret_a decree_n can_v not_o possible_o avoid_v it_o or_o whence_o come_v that_o sin_n or_o evil_n into_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n if_o they_o be_v pure_a in_o their_o first_o creation_n my_o christian_a brethren_n these_o curious_a query_n will_v occasion_v variety_n of_o spiritual_a matter_n yea_o and_o it_o will_v further_o i_o also_o
truth_n i_o declare_v that_o that_o serpent_n which_o tempt_v eve_n unto_o evil_n be_v one_o of_o those_o angel_n of_o light_n 5_o moreover_o that_o serpent_n angel_n be_v more_o wise_a or_o godlike_a in_o his_o creation_n then_o all_o the_o elect_a angel_n of_o glory_n for_o the_o most_o wise_a god_n in_o this_o may_v be_v liken_v to_o a_o wise_a earthly_a prince_n that_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o royal_a pleasure_n ex●lteth_v that_o subject_n to_o the_o high_a dignity_n which_o he_o have_v secret_o decree_v to_o the_o high_a disgrace_n 6_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o glorious_a creator_n who_o foreknow_v that_o his_o prerogative_n royal_a will_v compel_v he_o to_o create_v this_o angelical_a reprobate_n in_o reference_n to_o his_o divine_a justice_n therefore_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o most_o glorious_a power_n unto_o his_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n his_o wisdom_n see_v it_o most_o fit_a to_o endue_v he_o with_o more_o pierce_a rational_a wisdom_n and_o brightness_n of_o person_n than_o all_o his_o angelical_a companion_n because_o he_o be_v decree_v to_o the_o great_a shame_n and_o pain_n as_o aforesaid_a 7_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o also_o because_o the_o elect_a angel_n shall_v admire_v their_o creator_n wisdom_n and_o power_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o outcast_a condition_n of_o the_o high_a create_a glory_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o new_a declaration_n of_o honour_n praise_n and_o glory_n unto_o the_o divine_a majesty_n for_o his_o free_a elect_a love_n towards_o they_o through_o which_o they_o be_v insure_v eternal_o to_o reign_v in_o their_o create_a purity_n 8_o again_o from_o the_o true_a light_n of_o life_n i_o positive_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v but_o only_o one_o reprobate_a angel_n create_v at_o the_o first_o which_o be_v full_o clear_v in_o this_o book_n 9_o moreover_o you_o spiritual_a one_o may_v understand_v that_o if_o the_o most_o merciful_a creator_n can_v possible_o have_v know_v any_o other_o way_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o divine_a excellent_a 〈◊〉_d unto_o man_n and_o angel_n i_o say_v you_o may_v be_v confident_a he_o will_v never_o have_v create_v any_o thing_n on_o purpose_n for_o eternal_a suffering_n 10_o furthermore_o can_v you_o possible_o imagine_v or_o think_v that_o the_o most_o gracious_a and_o wise_a creator_n will_v ever_o have_v suffer_v the_o nature_n of_o any_o creature_n to_o become_v rebellious_a against_o himself_o for_o the_o occasion_v of_o such_o marvellous_a transaction_n in_o this_o world_n and_o suffering_n both_o of_o god_n angel_n and_o man_n if_o he_o can_v have_v possess_v his_o in●●nite_a glory_n in_o the_o create_v of_o every_o thing_n unto_o eternal_a pleasure_n 11_o again_o if_o dust_n and_o water_n be_v eternal_a substance_n distinct_a from_o the_o creator_n it_o be_v dark_a and_o dead_a matter_n it_o can_v not_o produce_v any_o kind_n of_o life_n at_o all_o of_o itself_o but_o be_v bring_v forth_o into_o life_n by_o another_o 12_o wherefore_o it_o may_v be_v query_v by_o some_o what_o be_v that_o which_o enter_v into_o dust_n and_o bring_v forth_o angelical_a body_n to_o live_v in_o the_o creator_n presence_n be_v it_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o that_o spiritual_a life_n or_o divine_a nature_n of_o god_n himself_o 13_o unto_o this_o curious_a quere_z from_o the_o true_a light_n of_o life_n i_o answer_v that_o neither_o the_o spirit_n of_o angel_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n be_v form_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n but_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n only_o 14_o but_o they_o be_v create_v of_o variety_n of_o spirit_n to_o one_o another_o and_o to_o the_o creator_n also_o yet_o they_o be_v all_o pure_o create_v and_o in_o a_o sweet_a harmony_n with_o each_o other_o and_o their_o creator_n also_o even_o so_o long_o and_o no_o long_o than_o they_o abide_v in_o their_o create_a purity_n 15_o again_o by_o inspiration_n from_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n i_o affirm_v that_o the_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n be_v secret_o hide_v in_o the_o infinite_a power_n of_o his_o word_n speak_v only_o 16_o so_o that_o it_o be_v the_o foreknowledge_n of_o his_o own_o mighty_a power_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a ground_n that_o move_v he_o to_o produce_v and_o live_a creature_n in_o his_o presence_n 17_o wherefore_o before_o any_o creature_n be_v form_v by_o he_o if_o he_o have_v not_o perfect_o know_v that_o of_o those_o aforesaid_a element_n of_o dust_n or_o water_n by_o his_o word_n speak_v only_o he_o can_v create_v as_o many_o several_a spirit_n with_o body_n suitable_a to_o their_o nature_n as_o he_o see_v good_a and_o yet_o whole_o retain_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o himself_o he_o will_v never_o have_v form_v any_o creature_n to_o have_v live_v in_o his_o sight_n 18_o because_o then_o you_o know_v there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o distinction_n of_o nature_n or_o name_n between_o the_o creature_n themselves_o and_o the_o creator_n nor_o none_o of_o the_o variety_n of_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n ever_o see_v or_o know_v by_o the_o creature_n 19_o for_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v understand_v that_o the_o creator_n royal_a will_n or_o pleasure_n be_v that_o glorious_a wheel_n that_o move_v he_o to_o form_v any_o creature_n at_o all_o 20_o therefore_o you_o may_v also_o know_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o create_v the_o spirit_n of_o angel_n and_o man_n to_o be_v both_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n or_o neither_o of_o they_o to_o be_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n because_o as_o aforesaid_a the_o variety_n of_o his_o wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n will_v have_v be_v all_o lose_a for_o want_v of_o distinction_n 21_o moreover_o if_o angel_n and_o man_n have_v be_v both_o of_o god_n divine_a nature_n in_o their_o creation_n then_o in_o stead_n of_o their_o be_v capable_a to_o be_v transmute_v into_o a_o high_a or_o low_a condition_n at_o the_o divine_a pleasure_n of_o the_o creator_n will_v they_o not_o rather_o have_v be_v unchangeable_a creator_n then_o changeable_a creature_n 22_o therefore_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o holy_a creator_n that_o he_o may_v prevent_v all_o that_o might_n impede_fw-la his_o divine_a purpose_n he_o create_v the_o body_n of_o angel_n spiritual_a and_o their_o nature_n rational_a and_o he_o make_v the_o body_n of_o the_o man_n adam_n natural_a and_o his_o soul_n spiritual_a 23_o for_o if_o their_o spirit_n and_o body_n have_v be_v both_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n than_o it_o will_v have_v be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v capable_a of_o any_o change_n of_o sin_n or_o evil_n or_o consent_v to_o evil_a in_o they_o no_o more_o than_o the_o creator_n himself_o 24_o where_o then_o have_v be_v all_o the_o wonderful_a transaction_n of_o his_o glorious_a majesty_n or_o what_o will_v have_v be_v form_v but_o creator_n only_a in_o stead_n of_o creature_n as_o aforesaid_a 25_o again_o because_o of_o our_o weak_a comprehension_n in_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n i_o shall_v speak_v something_o by_o way_n of_o imagination_n only_o which_o be_v as_o follow_v 26_o suppose_v the_o most_o high_a god_n shall_v have_v create_v both_o angel_n and_o man_n all_o glorious_a like_o himself_o and_o eternal_o so_o to_o remain_v yet_o those_o create_a being_n can_v not_o possible_o be_v the_o divine_a essence_n of_o his_o godhead_n spirit_n but_o only_o a_o create_a light_n of_o sensible_a life_n of_o divine_a joy_n proceed_v from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n by_o virtue_n of_o word_n speak_v through_o his_o heavenly_a mouth_n into_o those_o element_n beforesaid_a 27_o because_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o uncreated_a essence_n or_o godhead_n spirit_n of_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n be_v utter_o uncapable_a to_o be_v convey_v into_o a_o finite_a create_v be_v for_o infiniteness_n be_v only_o capable_a of_o its_o own_o glorious_a centre_n 28_o so_o that_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v understand_v that_o after_o the_o angel_n be_v form_v into_o live_a body_n the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o those_o create_a being_n be_v become_v distinct_a in_o their_o essence_n for_o everlasting_a 29_o that_o the_o angel_n by_o apparent_a sight_n of_o their_o creator_n face_n may_v know_v themselves_o to_o be_v but_o creature_n and_o subject_a to_o the_o divine_a pleasure_n of_o he_o that_o make_v they_o 30_o moreover_o from_o the_o true_a light_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n i_o affirm_v that_o the_o elect_a angel_n of_o eternal_a glory_n have_v no_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o continue_v in_o their_o create_a purity_n until_o the_o lord_n have_v discover_v the_o reprobate_a angel_n unto_o they_o 31_o it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o make_v all_o thing_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o the_o wicked_a for_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n 32_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a
brethren_n you_o know_v that_o the_o heavenly_a nature_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o all_o variety_n of_o glorious_a excellency_n 33_o also_o you_o know_v that_o the_o creator_n spirit_n be_v variety_n of_o spiritual_a perfection_n he_o can_v create_v nothing_o against_o his_o glory_n but_o for_o his_o glory_n only_o because_o that_o glory_n of_o he_o be_v himself_o or_o his_o all_o in_o all_o or_o only_a pillar_n upon_o which_o he_o build_v his_o everlasting_a kingdom_n 34_o wherefore_o if_o angel_n or_o man_n have_v be_v frame_v in_o unchangeable_a condition_n then_o in_o stead_n of_o make_v know_v his_o manifold_a divine_a glory_n to_o his_o creature_n he_o must_v have_v create_v thing_n for_o his_o own_o eternal_a ruin_n 35_o for_o if_o such_o a_o thing_n can_v possible_o have_v be_v in_o stead_n of_o be_v creature_n as_o aforesaid_a they_o will_v all_o have_v be_v creator_n and_o be_v unchangeable_a it_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v avoid_v but_o they_o must_v all_o have_v share_v in_o or_o of_o the_o creator_n unchangeable_a glory_n also_o 36_o moreover_o if_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n shall_v be_v divide_v into_o three_o divine_a person_n as_o many_o man_n blind_o imagine_v than_o you_o know_v that_o be_v all_o eternal_a they_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v equal_a in_o godhead_n wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n a_o kingdom_n thus_o divide_v can_v stand_v 37_o for_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a know_v that_o all_o the_o true_a prophet_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n do_v never_o acknowledge_v any_o more_o god_n than_o that_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n only_o and_o by_o inspiration_n they_o attribute_v many_o holy_a name_n unto_o his_o divine_a majesty_n for_o the_o exaltation_n of_o his_o glorious_a person_n above_o all_o angel_n and_o man_n 38_o moreover_o you_o know_v that_o in_o scripture_n it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n will_v not_o give_v his_o glory_n to_o another_o 39_o therefore_o what_o ever_o man_n vain_o dream_v of_o a_o creator_n or_o god_n or_o three_o person_n or_o of_o a_o bodiless_a infinite_a spirit_n yet_o unto_o we_o that_o be_v heir_n of_o eternal_a glory_n there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a wise_a god_n creator_n redeemer_n and_o alone_o everlasting_a father_n which_o be_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o one_o bless_a body_n of_o flesh_n and_o bone_n glorify_v chap._n iu._n 2_o of_o the_o angel_n further_o 2_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o pure_a reason_n 3_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 4_o wherein_o they_o differ_v 5_o the_o angel_n be_v under_o the_o moral_a law_n which_o be_v write_v in_o their_o nature_n 6_o the_o creator_n above_o all_o law_n 7_o a_o necessity_n of_o supply_v the_o angel_n with_o continual_a revelation_n from_o the_o creator_n 8_o he_o that_o be_v above_o all_o law_n make_v himself_o under_o the_o law_n by_o become_a flesh_n 9_o who_o be_v antichrist_n 10_o no_o joy_n in_o god_n without_o a_o form_n 11_o death_n a_o enemy_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o life_n in_o god_n angel_n and_o man_n before_o i_o treat_v of_o the_o first_o appearance_n of_o sin_n or_o evil_n in_o the_o reprobate_a angel_n i_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o creation_n of_o angel_n by_o a_o comparison_n 2_o suppose_v a_o man_n shall_v speak_v word_n unto_o dry_a dust_n of_o sand_n distinct_a from_o his_o person_n and_o before_o he_o speak_v unto_o that_o senseless_a chaos_n he_o do_v perfect_o know_v or_o believe_v in_o himself_o that_o out_o of_o that_o dead_a dust_n his_o very_a wo●ds_n will_v produce_v so_o many_o several_a sensible_a live_a body_n in_o his_o sight_n though_o those_o word_n proceed_v from_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o man_n 3_o yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o man_n spirit_n but_o only_o a_o powerful_a influence_n of_o speech_n or_o word_n speak_v through_o his_o mouth_n for_o manifest_v the_o variety_n of_o his_o natural_a wisdom_n power_n or_o glory_n over_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v 4_o moreover_o you_o know_v that_o a_o man_n with_o great_a ease_n may_v spare_v a_o few_o word_n without_o any_o trouble_n of_o mind_n in_o reference_n to_o what_o use_n he_o see_v fit_a to_o employ_v they_o they_o be_v his_o own_o workmanship_n can_v any_o sober_a man_n deny_v this_o man_n prerogative_n pleasure_n with_o his_o own_o i_o trow_v not_o 5_o this_o be_v the_o creator_n very_a case_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o creation_n and_o who_o dare_v to_o speak_v against_o it_o no_o spiritual_a wise_a man_n i_o be_o sure_a only_o some_o lustful_a person_n may_v dispute_v against_o it_o though_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o own_o reason_n when_o it_o be_v sober_a 6_o but_o deed_n of_o darkness_n hate_v the_o light_n and_o can_v do_v no_o otherwise_o and_o those_o that_o live_v in_o the_o light_n be_v make_v to_o abhor_v all_o deed_n of_o darkness_n or_o vain_a dispute_n against_o the_o creator_n royal_a will_n or_o righteous_a way_n 7._o thus_o you_o which_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v understand_v that_o neither_o the_o spirit_n of_o angel_n no_o nor_o of_o the_o man_n adam_n himself_o be_v of_o the_o divine_a essence_n in_o their_o creation_n it_o be_v truth_n the_o soul_n of_o adam_n be_v of_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v a_o create_a nature_n or_o virtue_n which_o bring_v forth_o its_o pure_a natural_a body_n as_o its_o house_n or_o tabernacle_n of_o abode_n so_o that_o as_o the_o body_n have_v a_o beginning_n of_o dust_n through_o which_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o change_n 8_o so_o likewise_o when_o that_o divine_a soul_n be_v cover_v with_o a_o earthly_a temple_n it_o be_v capable_a of_o mutability_n though_o it_o proceed_v from_o a_o immutable_a glory_n 9_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a though_o the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o angel_n have_v begin_v also_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o change_v but_o their_o spirit_n not_o be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o he_o that_o make_v they_o be_v whole_o subject_a to_o mutability_n 10_o for_o the_o angel_n spirit_n be_v pure_a reason_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o most_o pure_a reason_n be_v it_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o all_o pure_a desire_n and_o what_o be_v the_o original_n of_o the_o most_o pure_a or_o perfect_a desire_n that_o be_v be_v it_o not_o a_o want_n of_o something_o that_o be_v desire_v or_o a_o kind_n of_o unsatisfaction_n until_o its_o desire_n be_v satisfy_v from_o some_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o inherent_a in_o itself_o 11_o again_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n be_v it_o possible_a think_v you_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v the_o least_o motion_n of_o the_o most_o pure_a desire_n that_o be_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o spirit_n which_o be_v all_o fullness_n of_o divine_a satisfaction_n in_o itself_o 12_o or_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o that_o spirit_n that_o have_v any_o desire_n in_o its_o nature_n shall_v enjoy_v fullness_n of_o content_n in_o itself_o 13_o wherefore_o though_o the_o holy_a god_n create_v that_o angelical_a reason_n of_o all_o pure_a desire_n let_v no_o spiritual_a wise_a man_n call_v it_o his_o divine_a nature_n 14_o why_o because_o you_o know_v there_o can_v be_v no_o kind_n of_o desire_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o immortal_a god_n that_o be_v all_o variety_n of_o glorious_a satisfaction_n in_o itself_o as_o beforesaid_a 15_o but_o let_v he_o know_v from_o the_o true_a light_n of_o life_n that_o the_o creator_n by_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n or_o power_n from_o a_o word_n speak_v unto_o dust_n can_v create_v yea_o and_o do_v make_v divers_a live_a creature_n and_o yet_o not_o one_o motion_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o create_a being_n be_v inherent_a in_o his_o heavenly_a spirit_n 16_o therefore_o you_o that_o be_v possess_v with_o that_o new_a and_o true_a divine_a birth_n from_o the_o immortal_a throne_n may_v know_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o elect_a angel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o least_o of_o any_o part_n of_o the_o glorious_a nature_n of_o his_o spirit_n but_o only_o a_o create_v rational_a spirit_n of_o all_o pure_a desire_n which_o be_v not_o only_o become_v distinct_a from_o his_o divine_a nature_n now_o it_o possess_v its_o personal_a live_v be_v in_o itself_o 17_o but_o be_v also_o in_o its_o non_fw-la be_v in_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n eternal_o distinct_a from_o his_o undesiring_a nature_n of_o all_o spiritual_a glory_n secret_o hide_v in_o its_o own_o dark_a senseless_a element_n as_o beforesaid_a only_o by_o a_o powerful_a word_n it_o be_v command_v to_o appear_v and_o manifest_v itself_o in_o its_o own_o creature_o condition_n 18_o again_o some_o may_v say_v unto_o i_o be_v the_o angel_n under_o any_o law_n in_o their_o creation_n from_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n of_o our_o
no_o distinct_a form_n or_o person_n of_o its_o own_o to_o create_v any_o kind_n of_o live_a form_n at_o all_o 46_o what_o though_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o bless_a creator_n and_o gracious_a redeemer_n be_v infinite_a can_v it_o possible_o enjoy_v and_o kind_n of_o sensible_a life_n light_n or_o glory_n unless_o it_o have_v a_o distinct_a body_n or_o person_n of_o its_o own_o to_o possess_v it_o in_o 47_o again_o though_o many_o seem_a wise_a m●n_z for_o want_n of_o true_a divine_a faith_n do_v imagine_v the_o lord_n to_o be_v a_o vast_a spirit_n yet_o you_o know_v that_o when_o they_o be_v move_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o creator_n they_o usual_o say_v that_o the_o eternal_a be_v be_v a_o incomprehensible_a infiteness_n of_o variety_n of_o divine_a glory_n as_o namely_o wisdom_n say_v love_n patience_n meekness_n righteousness_n with_o all_o spiritual_a excellency_n 48_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n if_o the_o creator_n nature_n be_v all_o variety_n of_o divine_a virtue_n and_o every_o qualification_n in_o he_o be_v infinite_a how_o can_v those_o divine_a glory_n be_v sensible_a of_o their_o own_o be_v or_o incomprehensible_a blessedness_n unless_o they_o possess_v a_o distinct_a body_n of_o their_o own_o to_o possess_v that_o glory_n in_o yea_o a_o transcendent_a heavenly_a body_n answerable_a unto_o a_o unutterable_a spiritual_a glory_n 49_o for_n alas_o you_o know_v that_o no_o finite_a live_v be_v can_v possible_o be_v capable_a to_o possess_v divine_a virtue_n which_o be_v infinite_a and_o live_v 50_o you_o know_v that_o mortality_n and_o ●n●inite_a immortality_n can_v continue_v together_o 51_o therefore_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o that_o pure_a light_n which_o shine_v in_o our_o dark_a spirit_n though_o it_o be_v call_v the_o divine_a nature_n or_o spirit_n of_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o infinite_a nor_o immortal_a in_o we_o 52_o but_o it_o be_v a_o heavenly_a light_n or_o virtue_n in_o we_o change_v into_o a_o condition_n of_o pure_a mortality_n that_o it_o may_v instruct_v a_o mortal_a sinful_a soul_n concern_v immortal_a thing_n which_o be_v eternal_a 53_o for_o you_o experimental_a one_o know_v that_o if_o that_o light_n of_o life_n enjoy_v by_o we_o be_v immortal_a and_o eternal_a in_o we_o than_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v capable_a of_o any_o kind_n of_o misery_n or_o mutability_n in_o the_o least_o 54_o therefore_o you_o may_v know_v also_o that_o the_o great_a light_n in_o sinful_a man_n be_v but_o a_o inspire_a motion_n into_o the_o man_n spirit_n to_o purify_v the_o lie_a imagination_n or_o impure_a reason_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o that_o man_n that_o he_o may_v be_v capable_a to_o understand_v that_o the_o creator_n have_v a_o purpose_n to_o crown_v he_o with_o unchangeable_a personal_a glory_n at_o the_o great_a day_n 55_o but_o as_o for_o those_o man_n which_o dream_v of_o a_o condition_n of_o possess_v a_o unchangeable_a glory_n in_o this_o be_v through_o a_o essential_a oneness_n with_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n they_o be_v in_o the_o depth_n of_o spiritual_a darkness_n concern_v a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o creator_n of_o his_o heavenly_a way_n in_o man_n 56_o moreover_o you_o spiritual_a one_o may_v know_v that_o though_o no_o man_n have_v any_o light_n of_o life_n in_o he_o but_o what_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o a_o unchangeable_a glory_n yet_o because_o that_o vessel_n wherein_o this_o light_n do_v shine_v be_v a_o mortal_a sinner_n and_o must_v die_v therefore_o that_o heavenly_a light_n be_v make_v subject_n to_o mortality_n so_o 57_o because_o the_o most_o high_a god_n by_o his_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n have_v decree_v that_o all_o light_n of_o life_n in_o man_n shall_v become_v dead_a dust_n or_o earth_n for_o a_o moment_n that_o in_o his_o appoint_a season_n it_o may_v quicken_v again_o a_o new_a and_o glorious_a life_n out_o of_o death_n itself_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n power_n and_o ravish_a glory_n unto_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n 58_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o though_o death_n be_v and_o be_v that_o king_n of_o fear_n and_o enemy_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o life_n in_o god_n man_n and_o angel_n yet_o for_o a_o further_a increase_n of_o infiniteness_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o creator_n and_o finite_a glory_n in_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n it_o be_v his_o divine_a pleasure_n to_o make_v it_o as_o useful_a in_o its_o kind_n as_o life_n itself_o 59_o though_o this_o truth_n will_v be_v the_o judge_n of_o i_o and_o all_o man_n at_o the_o last_o yet_o i_o expect_v but_o few_o to_o embrace_v it_o through_o that_o endless_a opposition_n in_o man_n chap._n v._n 1_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o angel_n fall_v and_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o 2_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o elect_a angel_n 3_o the_o spiritual_a nature_n of_o the_o fall_v angel_n remain_v and_o what_o name_n be_v g_o when_fw-mi to_n h_o m._n 4_o a_o objection_n and_o the_o answer_n concern_v two_o vessel_n 5_o of_o the_o ●allen_a angel_n and_o adam_n 6_o no_o distinction_n between_o god_n and_o the_o creaiure_v but_o by_o name_n and_o nature_n 7_o election_n and_o reprobation_n prove_v by_o divers_a scripture_n i●_n the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v write_v of_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o downfall_n of_o the_o angelical_a reprobate_n from_o that_o height_n of_o his_o create_a glory_n which_o he_o possess_v above_o all_o the_o elect_a angel_n my_o belove_a brethren_n in_o ●he_n pure_a truth_n you_o know_v that_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o creator_n breathe_v itself_o into_o my_o ignorant_a soul_n have_v abundant_o remonstrate_v the_o distinction_n between_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o angel_n aforesaid_a 2_o moreover_o you_o may_v remember_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o angel_n be_v pu●e_a reason_n in_o their_o creation_n and_o furthermore_o you_o know_v it_o be_v clear_o prove_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o high_a reason_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o possible_a can_v be_v be_v nothing_o el●e_v but_o mere_a desire_n 3_o wherefore_o though_o the_o creator_n give_v it_o its_o rational_a be_v yet_o unto_o you_o spiritual_a one_o i_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o in_o his_o glorious_a spirit_n not_o one_o motion_n of_o reason_n be_v inherent_a 4_o because_o where_o any_o desire_n be_v though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o pure_a it_o be_v a_o want_n of_o something_o desire_v 5_o therefore_o you_o know_v than_o a_o infinite_a fullness_n of_o divine_a perfection_n in_o its_o own_o spirit_n can_v possible_o have_v any_o kind_n of_o want_n in_o it_o therefore_o uncapable_a of_o any_o kind_n of_o desire_n in_o the_o least_o 6_o because_o what_o it_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o do_v concern_v itself_o or_o any_o thing_n it_o have_v make_v you_o know_v it_o can_v do_v it_o to_o the_o utmost_a and_o who_o can_v let_v it_o or_o shall_v dare_v to_o say_v in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o eternal_a account_n why_o have_v thou_o make_v one_o vessel_n for_o eternal_a glory_n and_o another_o vessel_n for_o everlasting_a shame_n 7_o wherefore_o my_o christian_a f_z iend_n you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o angelical_a reprobate_n be_v expire_v the_o creator_n only_o withhold_v the_o inspiration_n of_o his_o divine_a glory_n from_o he_o and_o immediate_o for_o want_v of_o that_o spiritual_a meat_n to_o satisfy_v his_o desire_a nature_n his_o godlike_a cre●●ed_a purity_n become_v nothing_o else_o but_o imaginary_a impurity_n of_o secret_a aspire_a desire_n above_o the_o creator_n 8_o so_o that_o his_o former_a pure_a reason_n be_v then_o become_v nothing_o but_o a_o loathsome_a sink_n of_o unclean_a reason_n concern_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n be_v the_o creator_n and_o the_o creature_n be_v but_o creature_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o honour_v the_o creator_n for_o his_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n of_o form_v out_o of_o a_o little_a dead_a ●ust_z such_o a_o innumerable_a host_n of_o elect_a angel_n for_o his_o majesty_n personal_a society_n 9_o at_o the_o blind_a bar_n of_o his_o lie_a imagination_n secret_o he_o arraign_v all_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o infinite_a god_n in_o creation_n and_o condemn_a i●_n as_o weakness_n itself_o in_o comparison_n of_o his_o imaginary_a wisdom_n if_o he_o have_v be_v the_o creator_n 10_o again_o his_o angelical_a spirit_n be_v whole_o out_o of_o all_o creature_o order_n and_o be_v lift_v up_o with_o the_o wisdom_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o person_n he_o behold_v both_o the_o wisdom_n and_o person_n of_o all_o he_o elect_v angel_n as_o simple_a uncomely_a creature_n in_o comparison_n of_o he_o or_o his_o wisdom_n 11_o moreover_o conceive_v himself_o most_o fit_a for_o divine_a rule_n and_o behold_v himself_o and_o the_o creator_n together_o he_o imagine_v his_o personal_a wisdom_n more_o
capable_a of_o a_o divine_a throne_n than_o he_o which_o sit_v thereon_o 12_o furthermore_o he_o begin_v to_o imagine_v a_o new_a creation_n of_o his_o own_o for_o he_o think_v if_o he_o have_v be_v the_o creator_n by_o a_o word_n speak_v he_o can_v have_v form_v more_o glorious_a creature_n than_o those_o angel_n be_v without_o any_o dust_n or_o any_o other_o matter_n whatsoever_o 13_o or_o if_o he_o must_v have_v have_v some_o material_n to_o form_n thing_n withal_o he_o imagine_v by_o his_o word_n speak_v or_o think_v only_o he_o can_v have_v produce_v matter_n of_o a_o more_o excellent_a nature_n for_o creation_n then_o a_o little_a dry_a dust_n out_o of_o which_o he_o conceit_a he_o can_v have_v create_v creature_n all_o glorious_a and_o yet_o have_v retain_v his_o divine_a glory_n within_o himself_o distinct_a from_o they_o all_o 14_o furthermore_o he_o imagine_v that_o he_o can_v have_v create_v as_o many_o spirit_n as_o he_o see_v fit_a without_o any_o body_n at_o all_o 15_o or_o if_o he_o see_v good_a he_o can_v have_v form_v spiritual_a body_n that_o may_v be_v transform_v into_o any_o other_o nature_n or_o form_n after_o he_o have_v create_v they_o and_o not_o to_o continue_v only_o in_o one_o nature_n and_o form_n always_o 16_o for_o he_o think_v it_o want_v of_o wisdom_n or_o power_n in_o a_o creator_n yea_o and_o a_o veil_v of_o his_o infinite_a glory_n over_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v make_v if_o they_o may_v not_o be_v transmute_v into_o any_o condition_n whatsoever_o at_o his_o pleasure_n that_o form_v they_o 17_o wherefore_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o these_o and_o such_o l●ke_v creative_a confusion_n his_o irrational_a wi●dom_n of_o imaginary_a impossibility_n so_o elevate_v his_o outcast_a spirit_n that_o secret_o he_o utter_o abhor_v that_o the_o creator_n or_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v remain_v in_o be_v unless_o he_o only_o may_v bear_v rule_n over_o they_o all_o 18_o wherefore_o when_o the_o secret_a pride_n and_o envy_n of_o this_o angelical_a reprobate_n be_v at_o that_o height_n of_o unthron_v the_o creator_n or_o else_o a_o dissolution_n of_o all_o than_o the_o most_o wise_a god_n reveal_v his_o spiritual_a cruelty_n unto_o his_o holy_a angel_n and_o answerable_a unto_o what_o he_o will_v have_v do_v for_o a_o creator_n throne_n in_o the_o visible_a sight_n of_o his_o elect_a angel_n he_o condemn_v he_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o personal_a presence_n and_o heavenly_a throne_n or_o kingdom_n for_o everlasting_a 19_o and_o immediate_o like_a unto_o lightning_n he_o be_v throw_v down_o into_o this_o perish_a world_n where_o his_o desire_a kingdom_n of_o godlike_a government_n be_v prepare_v for_o he_o and_o his_o lineal_a angel_n in_o another_o way_n 20_o and_o so_o have_v leave_v their_o first_o estate_n they_o be_v reserve_v in_o everlasting_a chain_n of_o darkness_n or_o unbeleef_n until_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n then_o to_o give_v a_o eternal_a account_n of_o their_o devilish_a government_n over_o god_n elect_v righteous_a abel_n on_o this_o earth_n which_o be_v so_o exalt_v by_o he_o in_o the_o high_a heaven_n beforesaid_a 21_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n you_o may_v know_v that_o then_o and_o not_o till_o then_o all_o the_o elect_a angel_n in_o glory_n be_v fill_v with_o variety_n of_o new_a spiritual_a praise_n in_o their_o mouth_n of_o honour_n power_n praise_n glory_n majesty_n wisdom_n council_n dominion_n faith_n love_n mercy_n patience_n peace_n meekness_n justice_n righteousness_n or_o any_o divine_a excellency_n that_o can_v be_v name_v to_o their_o glorious_a creator_n for_o his_o elect_n free_a love_n unto_o they_o eternal_o to_o abide_v in_o their_o create_a purity_n to_o behold_v his_o glorious_a face_n 22_o and_o for_o his_o wonderful_a wisdom_n in_o create_v such_o angelical_a perfection_n unto_o a_o everlasting_a rejection_n of_o desperate_a burn_a envy_n in_o utter_a shame_n 23_o moreover_o you_o which_o expect_v crown_n of_o immortal_a glo●y_n may_v know_v that_o in_o the_o downfall_n of_o the_o angelical_a reprobate_n his_o spiritual_a form_n remain_v 24_o but_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o spirit_n be_v only_o change_v as_o beforesaid_a and_o so_o after_o our_o first_o parent_n be_v deceive_v by_o he_o answerable_a unto_o his_o filthy_a nature_n of_o impure_a reason_n or_o lie_a imagination_n 25_o in_o scripture_n record_v you_o know_v the_o lord_n be_v please_v to_o call_v he_o by_o such_o like_a title_n as_o these_o namely_o devil_n a_o dragon_n a_o enemy_n a_o wicked_a one_o a_o murderer_n a_o liar_n a_o thief_n a_o envious_a man_n a_o hypocrite_n a_o lucifer_n a_o beelzebub_n or_o a_o prince_n of_o the_o air_n or_o satan_n or_o reprobate_n and_o such_o like_a 26_o o_o you_o bless_a one_o of_o the_o most_o nigh_o god_n with_o astonish_a admiration_n it_o behove_v you_o not_o to_o flight_n but_o serious_o to_o ponder_v god_n wonderful_a wisdom_n in_o the_o create_v of_o angel_n and_o man_n why_o because_o in_o it_o be_v hide_v all_o spiritual_a secret_n which_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v reveal_v to_o elect_v man_n and_o angel_n unto_o eternity_n 27_o again_o i_o humble_o beseech_v you_o which_o have_v real_o be_v possess_v with_o that_o spiritual_a new_a birth_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o glory_n be_v there_o any_o light_n or_o life_n or_o love_n or_o any_o kind_n of_o divine_a excellency_n in_o the_o glorious_a spirit_n of_o our_o creator_n 28_o again_o have_v he_o any_o power_n over_o himself_o or_o over_o any_o creature_n which_o he_o have_v form_v either_o to_o fill_v they_o with_o glimpse_n of_o his_o most_o excellent_a glory_n or_o whole_o to_o retain_v they_o to_o himself_o 29_o if_o you_o grant_v he_o this_o his_o royal_a prerogative_n the_o which_o no_o spiritual_a one_o can_v possible_o deny_v then_o without_o all_o controversy_n unless_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o holy_a creator_n have_v form_v two_o vessel_n of_o several_a spirit_n to_o remain_v only_o for_o a_o season_n in_o their_o create_a purity_n 30_o and_o at_o the_o free_a time_n leave_v they_o both_o to_o their_o own_o create_a strength_n and_o so_o withhold_v that_o heavenly_a manna_n of_o divine_a inspiration_n from_o they_o both_o by_o which_o they_o stand_v that_o in_o order_n to_o their_o charge_n they_o may_v unite_v their_o spirit_n and_o body_n unlawful_o together_o for_o produce_v of_o two_o several_a generation_n of_o mankind_n on_o this_o earth_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o ravish_a glory_n unto_o the_o one_o and_o retain_v the_o heavenly_a splendour_n of_o his_o divine_a excellency_n whole_o from_o the_o other_o for_o the_o demonstration_n of_o his_o divine_a justice_n will_n or_o pleasure_n 31_o will_v not_o all_o his_o heavenly_a wisdom_n divine_a power_n or_o ravish_a glory_n have_v be_v veil_v from_o man_n and_o angel_n and_o must_v they_o not_o either_o have_v be_v all_o creator_n or_o creature_n like_v unto_o senseless_a stock_n or_o stone_n to_o all_o eternity_n in_o reference_n of_o any_o knowledge_n of_o the_o various_a wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o creator_n as_o abundant_o beforesaid_a 32_o again_o in_o that_o pure_a distinguish_a spirit_n of_o all_o divine_a truth_n i_o humble_o beseech_v you_o which_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o power_n of_o all_o natural_a notional_a or_o literal_a witchcraft_n and_o in_o the_o room_n thereof_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o good_a measure_n of_o spiritual_a understanding_n in_o the_o thing_n of_o eternity_n can_v there_o possible_o be_v any_o distinction_n between_o the_o unchangeable_a creator_n and_o changeable_a creature_n without_o variety_n of_o distinct_a nature_n and_o name_n to_o manifest_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o 33_o as_o namely_o since_o the_o outcast_a condition_n of_o the_o angelical_a reprobate_n and_o fall_v estate_n of_o the_o man_n adam_n 34_o can_v there_o now_o be_v any_o creator_n or_o god_n at_o all_o unless_o there_o be_v a_o devil_n or_o devil_n also_o 35_o or_o can_v there_o be_v any_o light_n or_o life_n and_o no_o darkness_n in_o death_n 36_o or_o can_v there_o be_v any_o eternal_a immortal_a glory_n for_o some_o man_n and_o no_o eternal_a shame_n and_o misery_n for_o other_o 37_o again_o can_v any_o man_n from_o any_o kind_n of_o faith_n or_o truth_n possible_o imagine_v or_o think_v that_o any_o one_o of_o these_o can_v be_v without_o the_o other_o 38_o do_v not_o the_o one_o give_v a_o absolute_a be_v unto_o the_o other_o can_v any_o man_n therefore_o think_v that_o if_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v dissolve_v that_o the_o other_o can_v continue_v to_o be_v 39_o thus_o you_o which_o enjoy_v that_o true_a distinguish_a light_n of_o eternal_a life_n in_o you_o may_v clear_o see_v that_o immortal_a heaven_n or_o glory_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v essential_o distinct_a from_o hell_n or_o shame_n or_o else_o there_o can_v be_v no_o perfect_a heaven_n
the_o most_o part_n how_o then_o can_v any_o man_n comprehend_v spiritual_a mystery_n which_o be_v eternal_a by_o his_o natural_a perish_a reason_n 6_o be_v not_o the_o most_o pierce_a reason_n in_o man_n only_o natural_a and_o can_v that_o which_o be_v natural_a comprehend_v that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a 7_o be_v they_o not_o as_o contrary_a as_o fire_n and_o water_n or_o as_o light_v and_o darkness_n how_o then_o can_v any_o man_n by_o his_o natural_a reason_n understand_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v spiritual_a it_o be_v write_v but_o the_o natural_a man_n perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v but_o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a discern_v all_o thing_n yet_o he_o himself_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n again_o be_v be_v write_v now_o we_o have_v receive_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v give_v to_o we_o of_o god_n which_o thing_n also_o we_o speak_v not_o in_o the_o word_n which_o man_n wisdom_n teach_v but_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v compare_v spiritual_a thing_n with_o spiritual_a 8_o my_o belove_a brethren_n you_o may_v see_v that_o the_o apostle_n come_v not_o to_o understand_v spiritual_a thing_n by_o their_o study_n in_o the_o writing_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n but_o by_o a_o gift_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o be_v enable_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n to_o comprehend_v the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n which_o they_o shall_v enjoy_v in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a 9_o moreover_o you_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n before_o his_o conversion_n be_v a_o very_a able_a man_n in_o the_o letter_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n yea_o and_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n blameless_a in_o his_o conversation_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o in_o zeal_n towards_o a_o unknown_a god_n he_o persecute_v the_o spirit_n of_o that_o letter_n through_o ignorance_n of_o that_o second_o man_n which_o be_v the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n 10_o it_o be_v truth_n that_o when_o the_o apostle_n preach_v the_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o eternity_n they_o allude_v unto_o moses_n and_o the_o true_a prophet_n because_o some_o of_o those_o mystery_n be_v fore-prophesied_n of_o by_o they_o but_o yet_o you_o may_v see_v that_o they_o be_v not_o instruct_v in_o those_o heavenly_a thing_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o prophetical_a letter_n but_o as_o beforesaid_a by_o inspiration_n from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n only_o 11_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v clear_o see_v that_o no_o man_n by_o his_o natural_a reason_n and_o study_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n can_v ever_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o glorious_a thing_n unto_o which_o the_o letter_n bear_v record_v unless_o he_o have_v receive_v a_o spiritual_a gift_n from_o that_o glorious_a god_n that_o move_v holy_a man_n of_o old_a to_o speak_v and_o write_v those_o record_n of_o truth_n 12_o therefore_o you_o may_v be_v confident_a that_o those_o man_n which_o ignorant_o call_v the_o letter_n spirit_n as_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o those_o spiritual_a teach_n of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n which_o many_o of_o his_o elect_a do_v enjoy_v that_o can_v read_v one_o letter_n in_o the_o bible_n his_o divine_a secret_n be_v treasure_v up_o for_o the_o simple_a and_o the_o subtle_a learned_a rationist_n be_v send_v empty_a away_o 13_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n in_o the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o eternity_n though_o man_n seem_o appear_v never_o so_o innocent_a in_o their_o way_n be_v it_o probable_a think_v you_o that_o those_o man_n be_v immediate_o move_v to_o speak_v unto_o the_o people_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o slight_a all_o the_o scripture_n record_v as_o a_o thing_n of_o nought_o 14_o i_o humble_o beseech_v you_o that_o be_v sober_a can_v any_o man_n of_o what_o tongue_n or_o language_n soever_o speak_v or_o write_v a_o better_a or_o as_o good_a a_o language_n as_o the_o scripture_n be_v and_o not_o speak_v scripture_n word_n or_o prove_v it_o be_v not_o the_o glorious_a god_n that_o move_v the_o holy_a man_n of_o old_a to_o speak_v or_o write_v these_o scripture_n record_v 15_o again_o if_o the_o most_o desperate_v man_n live_v which_o say_v in_o his_o heart_n there_o be_v no_o god_n shall_v commit_v murder_n or_o the_o like_a and_o shall_v escape_v the_o vengeance_n of_o man_n law_n for_o a_o season_n yet_o he_o can_v possible_o prevent_v the_o voice_n of_o that_o spiritual_a law_n within_o cry_v for_o vengeance_n from_o that_o law_n without_o he_o answerable_a to_o that_o within_o he_o 16_o moreover_o though_o natural_a wise_a man_n as_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n produce_v those_o record_n to_o bear_v testimony_n unto_o all_o error_n whatsoever_o yet_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o be_v word_n of_o pure_a truth_n not_o have_v the_o least_o error_n in_o they_o but_o error_n proceed_v only_o from_o that_o serpentine_a devil_n in_o man_n which_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n without_o a_o spiritual_a gift_n 17_o can_v any_o man_n that_o have_v the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o he_o be_v offend_v with_o those_o record_n which_o be_v witness_n of_o his_o innocent_a life_n in_o the_o face_n of_o those_o carnal_a hypocrite_n which_o for_o love_n of_o silver_n or_o honour_n prate_v of_o they_o only_o but_o secret_o h●te_v all_o obedience_n to_o they_o 18_o be_v not_o the_o literal_a record_n a_o demonstration_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o the_o choose_a of_o god_n which_o have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n in_o some_o measure_n to_o comprehend_v they_o 19_o moreover_o be_v not_o the_o te●chings_n of_o the_o bless_a spirit_n more_o abundant_o consolate_v to_o he_o if_o those_o heavenly_a breathe_n in_o he_o be_v harmonious_a with_o the_o command_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n without_o he_o 20_o can_n any_o man_n therefore_o which_o expect_v that_o eternal_a glory_n unto_o which_o these_o scripture_n above_o all_o the_o writing_n in_o the_o world_n bear_v record_n possible_o despise_v the_o letter_n and_o yet_o love_v that_o spirit_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v 21_o again_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o make_v one_o comparison_n in_o reference_n to_o this_o matter_n suppose_v two_o friend_n that_o love_v each_o other_o as_o their_o own_o soul_n have_v their_o personal_a residence_n in_o several_a kingdom_n and_o one_o of_o they_o as_o a_o testimony_n of_o his_o real_a love_n before_o he_o pass_v away_o leave_v behind_o he_o a_o book_n contain_v variety_n of_o sweet_a expression_n of_o friendship_n unto_o the_o other_o until_o he_o come_v again_o if_o that_o man_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o his_o friend_n shall_v burn_v that_o book_n to_o ash_n in_o stead_n of_o embrace_v it_o be_v that_o any_o sign_n of_o love_n in_o he_o to_o his_o friend_n afar_o off_o 22_o wherefore_o can_v any_o sober_a man_n imagine_v or_o think_v from_o any_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o the_o true_a jesus_n upon_o any_o account_n do_v ever_o command_v any_o man_n to_o burn_v those_o record_n which_o be_v a_o remonstrance_n of_o the_o wonderful_a spiritual_a transaction_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o holy_a god_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v yea_o &_o before_o this_o world_n be_v 23_o o_o lord_n god_n of_o heavenly_a order_n and_o not_o of_o earthly_a confusion_n even_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o dreadful_a name_n sake_n deliver_v thy_o redeem_v one_o not_o only_o from_o exalt_v the_o literal_a scripture_n above_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o speak_v they_o but_o also_o from_o dispute_v against_o the_o mysteriousness_n of_o they_o 24_o then_o no_o kind_n of_o natural_a witchcraft_n which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o spiritual_a power_n shall_v have_v dominion_n over_o they_o for_o ever_o but_o they_o shall_v patient_o wait_v for_o their_o change_n by_o a_o peaceable_a death_n or_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n through_o the_o appear_a of_o our_o only_a god_n and_o saviour_n in_o the_o air_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n to_o reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n 25_o even_o so_o come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o and_o make_v it_o manifest_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n whether_o thou_o have_v send_v we_o as_o we_o have_v declare_v or_o no._n chap._n vii_o 1_o of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o firmament_n sun_n moon_n and_o star_n 2_o of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o deep_a water_n 3_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n create_v 4_o why_o the_o deep_a water_n be_v eternal_a 5_o by_o what_o the_o firmament_n be_v form_v 6_o how_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n come_v 7_o of_o the_o distinct_a and_o fix_a body_n of_o the_o sun_n
mean_v that_o they_o be_v so_o fix_v as_o to_o be_v uncapable_a of_o motion_n but_o of_o the_o contrary_a from_o the_o lord_n i_o affirm_v that_o the_o firmament_n itself_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o motion_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o form_v it_o it_o be_v make_v unmoveable_a until_o the_o day_n of_o its_o dissolution_n and_o those_o body_n of_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n motion_n in_o that_o firmamental_a heaven_n in_o their_o season_n to_o fulfil_v that_o word_n of_o government_n in_o they_o 30_o for_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n and_o those_o ruler_n of_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n set_v in_o they_o as_o to_o govern_v both_o the_o day_n and_o the_o night_n may_v be_v compare_v to_o a_o prince_n with_o his_o noble_n throne_n and_o other_o inferior_a ruler_n 31_o for_o you_o know_v that_o his_o kingdom_n whereon_o they_o have_v their_o live_a being_n be_v unmoveable_a but_o the_o governor_n do_v the_o work_n unto_o which_o they_o be_v appoint_v 32_o my_o brethren_n you_o may_v understand_v also_o that_o the_o firmamental_a body_n above_o we_o or_o below_o we_o if_o you_o think_v it_o so_o for_o its_o appoint_a season_n be_v as_o firm_o fix_v as_o the_o earth_n we_o tread_v on_o and_o as_o thing_n in_o power_n be_v motional_a on_o this_o earth_n so_o likewise_o those_o create_a light_n be_v only_o motional_a in_o that_o heavenly_a body_n aforesaid_a 33_o again_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n set_v they_o in_o the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n to_o shine_v upon_o the_o earth_n 34_o my_o brethren_n harken_v no_o more_o unto_o vain_a astronomer_n or_o stargazer_n concern_v the_o bulk_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n for_o i_o positive_o affirm_v from_o that_o god_n that_o make_v they_o that_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o body_n be_v not_o much_o big_a than_o they_o appear_v to_o our_o natural_a sight_n 35_o o_o empty_a vain_a liar_n how_o long_o have_v you_o be_v suffer_v to_o deceive_v the_o people_n with_o your_o monstrous_a imaginary_a body_n of_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n which_o be_v not_o and_o of_o your_o great_a knowledge_n concern_v they_o your_o thing_n be_v too_o big_a to_o be_v good_a or_o true_a and_o the_o time_n of_o your_o serpentine_a sophistry_n be_v almost_o finish_v 36_o again_o i_o declare_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n be_v all_o distinct_a being_n from_o each_o other_o and_o possess_v their_o own_o create_a light_n alone_o neither_o borrow_v nor_o lend_v their_o light_n to_o one_o another_o what_o ever_o have_v be_v imagine_v to_o the_o contrary_a concern_v new_a moon_n or_o eclipse_n 37_o again_o you_o know_v the_o scripture_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n be_v two_o great_a body_n but_o two_o great_a light_n only_o neither_o do_v the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o global_a earth_n and_o heavenly_a firmament_n be_v cover_v with_o the_o vastness_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n or_o star_n or_o that_o they_o enclose_v any_o other_o body_n within_o their_o own_o body_n or_o that_o any_o other_o body_n be_v fix_v in_o they_o 38_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n be_v set_v in_o the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n to_o shine_v upon_o the_o earth_n wherefore_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n that_o that_o which_o be_v fix_v be_v of_o a_o less_o bulk_n than_o that_o wherein_o it_o be_v enclose_v 39_o yet_o you_o know_v that_o the_o great_a bulk_n may_v receive_v its_o principal_a light_n from_o that_o lesser_a body_n within_o its_o circumference_n as_o a_o rich_a diamond_n in_o a_o ring_n or_o a_o candle_n or_o torch_n in_o the_o night_n in_o a_o wide_a room_n or_o the_o like_a 40_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n you_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n consist_v not_o in_o bulk_n of_o thing_n but_o in_o the_o exceed_a brightness_n of_o they_o 41_o nay_o moreover_o you_o can_v but_o know_v that_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n do_v the_o more_o abundant_o appear_v in_o a_o extraordinary_a light_n shine_v from_o a_o very_a little_a body_n 42_o my_o brethren_n it_o be_v not_o the_o bulk_n of_o the_o sun_n or_o moon_n which_o cause_v so_o great_a a_o light_n but_o as_o aforesaid_a it_o be_v the_o transcendent_a brightness_n of_o their_o create_a purity_n which_o display_v those_o beam_n of_o light_n through_o the_o visible_a heaven_n and_o earth_n 43_o what_o ever_o have_v or_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_a from_o the_o lord_n i_o positive_o affirm_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n be_v all_o fix_a being_n only_o in_o one_o firmament_n 44_o moreover_o from_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n i_o declare_v that_o this_o visible_a heaven_n be_v all_o the_o firmament_n that_o ever_o be_v form_v by_o the_o creator_n 45_o furthermore_n though_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n be_v both_o form_v out_o of_o that_o element_n of_o water_n yet_o they_o be_v make_v as_o contrary_v in_o their_o nature_n as_o fire_n and_o water_n 46_o because_o you_o know_v their_o government_n be_v over_o contrary_a being_n the_o one_o to_o rule_v the_o day_n and_o the_o other_o to_o rule_v the_o night_n so_o that_o as_o the_o sun_n be_v a_o fiery_a glorious_a light_n for_o consolation_n unto_o the_o natural_a thing_n of_o the_o day_n so_o likewise_o the_o moon_n be_v a_o qualify_a cold_a watery_a light_n answerable_a to_o the_o watery_a thing_n of_o the_o night_n 47_o wherefore_o though_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v of_o a_o more_o eminent_a brightness_n than_o that_o of_o the_o moon_n yet_o they_o be_v of_o contrary_a nature_n it_o be_v against_o all_o sober_a reason_n that_o the_o one_o shall_v receive_v any_o light_n from_o the_o other_o in_o the_o least_o 48_o again_o you_o know_v that_o when_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n seem_v close_o together_o in_o stead_n of_o any_o agreement_n between_o they_o there_o be_v such_o a_o fiery_a contest_v as_o if_o they_o will_v absolute_o destroy_v each_o other_o and_o what_o think_v you_o be_v the_o just_a occasion_n of_o it_o be_v it_o not_o the_o difference_n of_o their_o nature_n 49_o can_v fire_v and_o water_n or_o light_n and_o darkness_n agree_v if_o they_o be_v unite_v together_o be_v there_o any_o rest_n unto_o either_o of_o they_o until_o one_o of_o they_o be_v dissolve_v 50_o my_o belove_a friend_n in_o the_o pure_a truth_n what_o ever_o man_n have_v long_o declare_v concern_v the_o eclipse_n of_o the_o sun_n through_o the_o near_a appearance_n of_o the_o moon_n you_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o true_a occasion_n of_o the_o sun_n eclipse_v whether_o in_o part_n or_o whole_a be_v according_a to_o their_o appear_v at_o a_o further_o or_o near_a distance_n unto_o each_o other_o 51_o for_o as_o beforesaid_a the_o nature_n of_o the_o one_o be_v fiery_a hot_a and_o dry_a and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o other_o be_v watery_a cold_a and_o moist_a if_o the_o most_o high_a god_n have_v not_o decree_v the_o time_n of_o their_o contest_v when_o they_o be_v near_o conjoin_v there_o will_v be_v no_o communion_n between_o they_o until_o one_o of_o they_o be_v utter_o dissolve_v 52_o again_o be_v it_o not_o as_o clear_v as_o the_o light_n itself_o unto_o we_o that_o the_o true_a occasion_n of_o all_o variance_n between_o create_a being_n whether_o sensible_a or_o insensible_a arise_v only_o from_o a_o difference_n of_o nature_n or_o spirit_n in_o they_o 53_o moreover_o when_o any_o kind_n of_o nature_n be_v suitable_a to_o each_o other_o be_v there_o not_o a_o sweet_a harmony_n between_o they_o 54_o wherefore_o if_o the_o moon_n receive_v her_o light_n from_o the_o sun_n as_o natural_a wise_a man_n have_v long_o imagine_v be_v it_o not_o against_o all_o sense_n or_o reason_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o union_n between_o they_o but_o at_o a_o distance_n 55_o do_v it_o not_o rather_o agree_v with_o all_o true_a sense_n that_o if_o the_o one_o receive_v her_o light_n from_o the_o other_o that_o the_o more_o near_o they_o be_v in_o bodily_a appearance_n the_o more_o great_a harmony_n will_v ensue_v and_o occasion_n the_o lesser_a light_n rather_o to_o shine_v more_o clear_o than_o darken_v each_o other_o brightness_n 56_o i_o think_v that_o william_n lily_n and_o his_o learned_a brethren_n in_o astrologian_n figure_n dare_v not_o say_v that_o either_o the_o sun_n or_o the_o moon_n be_v ever_o at_o variance_n with_o their_o own_o self_n or_o that_o the_o eclipse_n of_o the_o sun_n or_o moon_n proceed_v from_o any_o harmony_n between_o that_o which_o occasion_v the_o eclipse_n and_o the_o thing_n so_o eclipse_v 57_o well_o then_o
who_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fashion_v like_o unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n according_a to_o the_o work_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a even_o to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n unto_o himself_o and_o to_o you_o which_o be_v trouble_v rest_n with_o we_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v show_v himself_o from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n in_o flame_a fire_n render_v vengeance_n unto_o they_o that_o do_v not_o know_v god_n and_o which_o obey_v not_o unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a perdition_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n 2_o thes_n 1._o for_o the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n and_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o with_o the_o trumpet_n of_o god_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v first_o then_o shall_v we_o which_o live_v and_o remain_v be_v catch_v up_o with_o they_o also_o in_o the_o cloud_n i●_n meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o be_v ever_o with_o the_o lord_n 1_o thes_n 4.16_o 17._o for_o therefore_o we_o labour_v and_o be_v rebuke_v because_o we_o trust_v in_o the_o l●ving_a god_n which_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o man_n especial_o of_o those_o that_o believe_v 1_o tim._n 4.10_o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v of_o god_n and_o this_o whole_a world_n lie_v in_o wickedness_n but_o we_o know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o have_v give_v we_o a_o mind_n to_o know_v he_o which_o be_v true_a and_o we_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a that_o be_v in_o that_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o be_v that_o very_a god_n and_o that_o eternal_a life_n 1_o john_n 5.19_o 20._o now_o unto_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v you_o that_o you_o fall_v not_o and_o to_o present_v you_o faultless_a before_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o glory_n with_o joy_n that_o be_v to_o god_n only_o wise_a our_o saviour_n be_v glory_n and_o majesty_n and_o dominion_n and_o power_n both_o now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_o judas_n 25.26_o 18_o remember_v the_o golden_a positive_a rule_n and_o none_o can_v deceive_v you_o concern_v the_o one_o glorious_a personal_a god-man_n bless_v for_o ever_o this_o be_v a_o true_a say_n and_o by_o all_o mean_v worthy_a to_o be_v receive_v that_o christ_n jesus_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v sinner_n of_o who_o i_o be_o chief_a notwithstanding_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v i_o receive_v to_o mercy_n that_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v first_o show_v on_o i_o all_o long-suffering_a unto_o the_o example_n of_o they_o which_o shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v believe_v in_o he_o unto_o eternal_a life_n now_o unto_o the_o king_n everlasting_a immortal_a invisible_a unto_o god_n o●ely_o wise_a be_v honour_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n 1_o tim._n 1.15_o 16_o 17._o 19_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n if_o you_o take_v good_a no●ice_n of_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n you_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n ow_v no_o other_o god_n father_n or_o eternal_a spirit_n but_o that_o one_o personal_a majesty_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o immortality_n there_o be_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o which_o be_v above_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o in_o you_o all_o but_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o he_o say_v when_o he_o ascend_v up_o on_o high_a he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a and_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n now_o in_o that_o he_o ascend_v what_o be_v it_o but_o that_o he_o also_o descend_v first_o into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n he_o that_o descend_v be_v even_o the_o same_o that_o ascend_v far_o above_o all_o heaven_n that_o he_o may_v fill_v all_o thing_n 20_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n which_o be_v appoint_v unto_o a_o immortal_a personal_a glory_n you_o may_v see_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v that_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n which_o first_o descend_v from_o his_o throne_n of_o infinite_a godhead_n glory_n into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o virgin_n earth_n and_o so_o become_v a_o body_n of_o pure_a flesh_n of_o her_o seed_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n in_o that_o very_a body_n of_o flesh_n and_o bone_n he_o descend_v into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n death_n hell_n or_o the_o grave_n for_o a_o moment_n not_o only_o for_o improve_n the_o power_n of_o his_o godhead_n life_n enter_v into_o death_n and_o in_o that_o very_a body_n of_o flesh_n quicken_a and_o revive_v a_o new_a and_o glorious_a life_n again_o and_o as_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n natural_o ascend_v and_o immortalise_a that_o body_n of_o flesh_n and_o bone_n with_o a_o father_n throne_n of_o transcendent_a excellency_n but_o also_o for_o destroy_v of_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o fear_v of_o eternal_a death_n in_o all_o his_o new_a bear_v elect_a tree_n unto_o eternal_a life_n chap._n x._o 1_o of_o persecution_n of_o conscience_n 2_o of_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n my_o belove_a brethren_n by_o immediate_a inspiration_n from_o that_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v clear_o demonstrate_v unto_o the_o heir_n of_o glory_n the_o confuse_a darkness_n of_o two_o or_o three_o sort_n of_o man_n concern_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o only_a very_o true_a god_n the_o which_o confusion_n rise_v in_o they_o through_o their_o misunderstanding_n of_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o certain_a scripture_n as_o namely_o these_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v but_o more_o especial_o these_o trinitary_n expression_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n mat._n 28.19_o for_o there_o be_v three_o which_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o 1_o john_n 5.7_o 2_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o deceive_v person_n past_a or_o present_a which_o affirm_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n to_o consist_v of_o three_o person_n be_v athanasin_n socinus_n alias_o john_n biddle_n and_o their_o literal_a adherent_n 3_o my_o brethren_n i_o do_v not_o say_v they_o can_v help_v this_o their_o darkness_n or_o blame_v they_o for_o this_o their_o error_n for_o alas_o poor_a simple_a or_o over-wise_a man_n to_o their_o imaginary_a understanding_n it_o be_v a_o pure_a truth_n and_o those_o which_o be_v contrary_a mind_v to_o they_o in_o darkness_n 4_o therefore_o who_o ever_o be_v leave_v to_o persecute_v their_o person_n for_o their_o judgement_n sake_n only_o it_o will_v have_v be_v better_a for_o those_o man_n that_o they_o have_v never_o be_v bear_v if_o they_o acknowledge_v a_o christ_n 5_o take_v this_o for_o a_o infallible_a rule_n those_o that_o persecute_v a_o man_n for_o error_n in_o judgement_n concern_v his_o god_n will_v as_o soon_o persecute_v he_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n as_o for_o a_o lie_n 6_o let_v no_o persecutor_n flatter_v himself_o that_o he_o may_v repent_v and_o find_v mercy_n as_o well_o as_o paul_n because_o paul_n acknowledge_v no_o jesus_n at_o all_o when_o he_o persecute_v his_o saint_n therefore_o you_o know_v how_o he_o plead_v god_n mercy_n towards_o he_o in_o that_o he_o do_v it_o ignorant_o 7_o moreover_o how_o deep_o do_v he_o pledge_v that_o cup_n of_o persecution_n upon_o his_o own_o body_n for_o the_o truth_n sake_n all_o his_o day_n which_o instrumental_o for_o christ_n sake_n he_o have_v cause_v other_o to_o drink_v 8_o again_o before_o i_o go_v forward_o concern_v the_o point_n in_o hand_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a for_o i_o to_o show_v you_o who_o those_o persecutor_n be_v which_o commit_v that_o unpardonable_a sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 9_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n if_o a_o turk_n do_v persecute_v a_o man_n that_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n for_o despise_v of_o his_o mahomet_n or_o if_o a_o man_n call_v a_o christian_a shall_v persecute_v a_o infidel_n for_o despise_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n this_o persecute_v each_o other_o be_v pardonable_a though_o not_o justifiable_a in_o their_o conscience_n when_o they_o shall_v understand_v the_o truth_n of_o leave_v all_o vengeance_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n unto_o god_n himself_o 10_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a suppose_v two_o man_n shall_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n glorify_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n both_o of_o they_o affirm_v that_o all_o their_o hope_n of_o eternal_a
salvation_n only_o depend_v upon_o he_o if_o these_o man_n for_o difference_n in_o judgement_n only_o concern_v this_o jesus_n shall_v persecute_v each_o other_o before_o a_o magistrate_n or_o the_o like_a there_o remain_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o that_o sin_n 11_o for_o that_o be_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n against_o the_o holy_a spirit_n because_o they_o persecute_v each_o other_o for_o his_o sake_n which_o they_o both_o confess_v to_o be_v their_o god_n and_o saviour_n even_o to_o their_o own_o knowledge_n 12_o and_o in_o so_o do_v they_o condemn_v their_o own_o faith_n and_o to_o the_o utmost_a of_o their_o power_n they_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n afresh_o and_o put_v he_o to_o a_o open_a shame_n even_o before_o his_o filthy_a scoff_a enemy_n 13_o again_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o holy_a name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o shall_v declare_v many_o heavenly_a secret_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n 14_o if_o man_n which_o confess_v the_o same_o jesus_n because_o the_o thing_n declare_v be_v contrary_a to_o their_o way_n and_o hard_a say_n to_o their_o comprehension_n shall_v therefore_o condemn_v they_o as_o delusion_n and_o blasphemy_n and_o the_o spirit_n which_o speak_v they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n in_o so_o do_v they_o have_v fall_v under_o that_o sin_n of_o eternal_a condemnation_n because_o as_o aforesaid_a they_o have_v crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n afresh_o and_o put_v he_o to_o a_o open_a shame_n and_o have_v judge_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o everlasting_a life_n and_o have_v deny_v their_o own_o faith_n and_o hope_n in_o he_o through_o their_o despise_v that_o holy_a spirit_n which_o seal_v man_n up_o unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n 15_o my_o belove_a brethren_n though_o any_o one_o belove_a dalilah_n reign_v in_o man_n unto_o the_o death_n tend_v to_o eternal_a condemnation_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o actual_a sin_n whatsoever_o but_o be_v pardonable_a unless_o man_n commit_v they_o upon_o the_o account_n aforesaid_a 16_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o heir_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o vessel_n of_o shame_n concern_v this_o sin_n 17_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o christ_n jesus_n have_v endue_v his_o elect_a with_o such_o a_o measure_n of_o light_n though_o most_o of_o they_o know_v it_o not_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o holy_a fire_n they_o be_v not_o only_o preserve_v from_o that_o condemn_a evil_n but_o be_v rather_o fearful_a they_o have_v or_o shall_v commit_v it_o 18_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o desperate_a reprobate_n be_v so_o far_o from_o any_o kind_n of_o fear_n in_o he_o concern_v the_o commit_n of_o that_o castaway_n sin_n that_o when_o occasion_n be_v offer_v he_o glori_v in_o it_o as_o the_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n unto_o his_o god_n and_o yet_o know_v it_o not_o 19_o thus_o brief_o i_o have_v touch_v upon_o the_o unpardonable_a sin_n against_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o very_a say_n only_o make_v a_o sin_n pardonable_a or_o unpardonable_a because_o he_o be_v truth_n itself_o and_o can_v possible_o lie_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o all_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o man_n and_o blasphemy_n wherewith_o they_o blaspheme_v but_o he_o that_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v never_o have_v forgiveness_n but_o be_v culpable_a of_o eternal_a damnation_n because_o they_o say_v he_o have_v a_o unclean_a spirit_n mark_v 3.28_o 29_o 30._o you_o bless_a one_o know_v who_o it_o be_v that_o speak_v those_o word_n chap._n xi_o 1_o of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o infiniteness_n 2_o wherein_o it_o lie_v viz._n in_o the_o not_o know_v its_o beginning_n or_o end_v 3_o infiniteness_n and_o finiteness_n be_v uncapable_a of_o equal_a glory_n 4_o against_o all_o true_a reason_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v three_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n 5_o christ_n and_o the_o father_n one_o undivided_a godhead_n 6_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o only_a god_n be_v antichrist_n 7_o how_o prayer_n be_v hear_v in_o the_o next_o place_n from_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n i_o shall_v demonstrate_v the_o absurdity_n of_o that_o error_n of_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o godhead_n 2_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n if_o the_o divine_a majesty_n shall_v contain_v of_o three_o distict_a person_n in_o coequal_a godhead_n glory_n and_o each_o person_n be_v uncreated_a and_o eternal_a of_o itself_o then_o in_o stead_n of_o those_o name_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n they_o will_v of_o necessity_n be_v three_o father_n only_o 3_o because_o you_o know_v that_o if_o the_o person_n of_o a_o son_n or_o holy_a ghost_n be_v create_v or_o beget_v or_o proceed_v from_o a_o father_n than_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o sober_a sense_n or_o reason_n that_o the_o person_n of_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v either_o be_v coequal_a with_o the_o father_n or_o eternal_a of_o themselves_o 4_o moreover_o if_o the_o person_n of_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n than_o they_o be_v but_o finite_a create_v glory_n and_o in_o degree_n low_o than_o the_o father_n 5_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a know_v that_o that_o which_o receive_v its_o beginning_n from_o another_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v make_v equal_a with_o that_o which_o be_v eternal_a of_o itself_o 6_o uncreated_a incomprehensible_a infiniteness_n be_v capable_a to_o transmute_v itself_o into_o a_o low_a condition_n for_o its_o own_o transcendent_a advantage_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o elect_a but_o it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a for_o he_o to_o create_v infinite_a incomprehensible_a being_n to_o become_v coequal_a in_o godhead_n wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n with_o himself_o 7_o uncreated_a glory_n be_v so_o unutterable_o infinite_a that_o it_o be_v uncapable_a to_o comprehend_v the_o height_n length_n breadth_n or_o depth_n of_o its_o own_o eternal_a excellency_n 8_o if_o this_o say_n seem_v strange_a unto_o any_o man_n as_o to_o cause_v he_o to_o think_v it_o ridiculous_a or_o dishonourable_a to_o the_o creator_n glory_n unto_o that_o man_n i_o positive_o affirm_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o any_o kind_n of_o dishonour_n unto_o the_o divine_a majesty_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_a all_o the_o variety_n of_o spiritual_a joy_n or_o heavenly_a pleasure_n for_o himself_o or_o elect-man_n and_o angel_n consist_v only_o in_o his_o perfect_a understanding_n that_o he_o can_v possible_o know_v any_o beginning_n or_o end_v of_o his_o glorious_a excellency_n 9_o to_o know_v the_o beginning_n or_o end_v of_o itself_o you_o know_v cause_v nothing_o but_o sorrow_n rather_o than_o joy_n 10_o so_o likewise_o on_o the_o contrary_a not_o to_o know_v any_o beginning_n or_o end_v of_o itself_o must_v needs_o occasion_v nothing_o else_o but_o ravish_v everlasting_a joy_n 11_o thus_o you_o which_o be_v spiritual_a may_v clear_o see_v the_o fallacy_n of_o the_o three_o person_n and_o one_o god_n speak_v of_o in_o athanasius_n creed_n you_o know_v that_o infiniteness_n and_o finiteness_n be_v uncapable_a of_o equal_a glory_n 12_o also_o you_o know_v that_o if_o there_o shall_v have_v be_v three_o person_n eternal_o of_o themselves_o there_o can_v not_o possible_o have_v be_v any_o son_n or_o holy_a ghost_n at_o all_o because_o a_o son_n or_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o a_o father_n and_o not_o as_o beforesaid_a from_o themselves_o 13_o moreover_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o if_o it_o stand_v to_o any_o true_a faith_n or_o sober_a reason_n that_o there_o be_v three_o person_n eternal_o of_o themselves_o yet_o they_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v three_o father_n only_o and_o so_o agree_v together_o two_o of_o those_o father_n must_v be_v transmute_v into_o a_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o other_o father_n or_o from_o themselves_o to_o make_v up_o this_o confuse_a trinity_n proceed_v from_o the_o literal-monger_n of_o this_o vainglorious_a perish_a world_n or_o conscientious_a non-commissionated_n man_n which_o will_v compel_v word_n to_o become_v person_n have_v no_o positive_a record_n to_o prove_v any_o such_o three_o person_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n but_o the_o contrary_a altogether_o my_o glory_n i_o will_v not_o give_v to_o another_o say_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n jehovah_n our_o everliving_a jesus_n god_n only_o wise_a bless_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o honour_v only_o from_o his_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n 14_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n you_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o only_o the_o godhead_n title_n in_o scripture_n record_n but_o also_o all_o the_o glory_n from_o man_n and_o angel_n be_v attribute_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o heb._n 1_o to_o
fullness_n only_o do_v we_o not_o all_o receive_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n if_o we_o have_v any_o grace_n at_o all_o rule_n in_o we_o 3_o and_o be_v he_o not_o the_o redeemer_n of_o his_o belove_a people_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o be_v he_o not_o the_o judge_n of_o quick_a &_o dead_a and_o be_v not_o all_o thing_n make_v by_o he_o and_o for_o he_o and_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v without_o he_o and_o be_v he_o not_o before_o all_o thing_n and_o do_v not_o all_o thing_n consist_v in_o he_o and_o be_v not_o all_o thing_n uphold_v by_o that_o almighty_a word_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n only_o 4_o see_v these_o be_v undeniable_a word_n of_o truth_n itself_o do_v not_o all_o those_o man_n that_o own_o any_o other_o god_n or_o father_n or_o creator_n above_o before_o or_o beside_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n deny_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n and_o imagine_v a_o curse_a lie_n and_o bow_v down_o to_o that_o curse_a idol_n of_o their_o own_o invent_a word_n only_o utter_o deny_v that_o honour_n and_o glory_n due_a unto_o jesus_n christ_n the_o creator_n himself_o 5_o who_o be_v a_o liar_n but_o he_o that_o deni_v that_o jesus_n be_v that_o christ_n the_o same_o be_v that_o antichrist_n that_o deni_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n whosoever_o deni_v the_o son_n the_o same_o have_v not_o the_o father_n he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v that_o life_n and_o he_o that_o have_v not_o that_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o that_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v the_o witness_n in_o himself_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o god_n have_v make_v he_o a_o liar_n because_o he_o believe_v not_o the_o record_n that_o god_n witness_v of_o that_o his_o son_n and_o this_o be_v the_o record_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o we_o eternal_a life_n and_o this_o life_n be_v in_o that_o his_o son_n but_o you_o have_v anointment_n from_o that_o holy_a one_o and_o know_v all_o thing_n these_o literal_a word_n of_o truth_n be_v in_o the_o epistle_n by_o st._n john_n all_o thing_n be_v give_v unto_o i_o of_o my_o father_n and_o no_o man_n know_v the_o son_n but_o the_o father_n neither_o know_v any_o man_n the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o mat._n 11._o 6_o some_o deceive_a person_n ignorant_o hold_v forth_o a_o false_a god_n or_o trinity_n which_o say_v that_o the_o infinite_a majesty_n be_v a_o vast_a bodiless_a spirit_n also_o they_o call_v their_o god_n by_o a_o twofold_a name_n or_o spirit_n a_o spirit_n father_n and_o a_o spirit_n son_n and_o these_o spirit_n they_o say_v be_v in_o their_o spirit_n and_o so_o these_o three_o spirit_n be_v one_o essence_n make_v up_o their_o imaginary_a trinity_n in_o unity_n 7_o these_o be_v those_o which_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n or_o father_n or_o creator_n b●t_v what_o be_v invisible_o live_v in_o the_o creation_n or_o in_o the_o creature_n only_o and_o if_o you_o sober_o ask_v they_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o creator_n and_o concern_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o any_o such_o creator_n you_o shall_v receive_v such_o like_a answer_n as_o this_o be_v 8_o the_o creator_n be_v a_o infinite_a incomprehensible_a spirit_n essential_o fill_v all_o thing_n and_o place_n or_o they_o will_v say_v that_o a_o creature_n be_v utter_o uncapable_a of_o any_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n himself_o but_o within_o the_o creature_n only_o or_o else_o they_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o not_o to_o know_v the_o creator_n be_v the_o great_a knowledge_n of_o a_o creator_n 9_o again_o you_o shall_v have_v such_o confusion_n as_o this_o from_o some_o of_o these_o high_a fly_v atheist_n the_o creator_n be_v all_o thing_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o and_o be_v every_o where_o and_o yet_o he_o be_v no_o where_n at_o all_o 10_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v reply_v and_o say_v nothing_o be_v nothing_o but_o if_o you_o grant_v a_o creator_n he_o must_v be_v something_o as_o well_o as_o his_o creature_n or_o else_o there_o can_v be_v no_o creator_n at_o all_o 11_o further_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v the_o creator_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v some_o glorious_a thing_n which_o be_v infinite_a in_o itself_o and_o distinct_a from_o all_o creature_n as_o well_o as_o the_o creature_n be_v distinct_a from_o one_o another_o or_o else_o you_o utter_o deny_v a_o creator_n 12_o then_o these_o man_n will_v say_v what_o be_v your_o creator_n you_o pretend_v to_o know_v and_o where_o be_v his_o residence_n do_v you_o ever_o see_v he_o or_o such_o like_a 13_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v reply_v that_o the_o creator_n be_v a_o incomprehensible_a glorious_a person_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n and_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o brightness_n he_o fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n angel_n and_o man_n spiritual_o or_o natural_o only_o his_o ever_o bless_a person_n be_v resident_a on_o a_o throne_n of_o infinite_a glory_n in_o but_o one_o place_n at_o once_o as_o the_o person_n of_o a_o man_n be_v in_o this_o world_n 14_o then_o these_o man_n be_v ready_a to_o vilify_v such_o a_o creator_n as_o a_o simple_a weak_a thing_n or_o else_o they_o will_v say_v this_o be_v to_o confine_v a_o unknown_a infiniteness_n into_o a_o creature_o substance_n and_o such_o a_o god_n of_o a_o bodily_a appearance_n any_o way_n like_o unto_o themselves_o in_o the_o least_o they_o utter_o abhor_v but_o as_o beforesaid_a a_o wonderful_a god_n which_o be_v uncapable_a of_o ever_o be_v see_v or_o know_v by_o the_o creature_n such_o a_o non-sensible_a infinite_a nothing_o all_o vainglorious_a man_n delight_v to_o own_o who_o love_n darkness_n rather_o than_o light_v because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil_a 15_o another_o sort_n there_o be_v of_o these_o man_n which_o appear_v more_o angelical_a than_o the_o rest_n these_o be_v those_o which_o be_v full_a of_o expression_n of_o heavenly_a rapture_n through_o a_o suppose_a union_n with_o a_o father_n and_o son_n within_o they_o only_o and_o various_a song_n which_o they_o call_v spiritual_a break_n forth_o in_o they_o unto_o which_o hymn_n or_o natural_a song_n mix_v with_o many_o spiritual_a expression_n in_o meet_a or_o otherways_o they_o bow_v down_o their_o soul_n and_o ignorant_o say_v it_o be_v the_o father_n breathe_v forth_o those_o fleshly_a ballad_n through_o their_o mouth_n moreover_o if_o these_o notional_a flash_n shall_v see_v any_o of_o their_o own_o fancy_n lie_v under_o a_o wound_a spirit_n and_o through_o some_o extraordinary_a guilt_n cry_v out_o they_o have_v that_o fire_n of_o hell_n burn_v in_o they_o and_o be_v those_o devil_n which_o be_v under_o eternal_a damnation_n already_o 16_o further_n though_o their_o condition_n be_v like_a unto_o cain_n through_o the_o eternal_a absence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n speak_v peace_n unto_o their_o outcast_a condition_n yet_o when_o these_o notional_a flash_n shall_v come_v to_o visit_v their_o friend_n in_o this_o his_o horrid_a unutterable_a pain_n and_o shame_n they_o will_v speak_v such_o like_a empty_a speech_n be_v these_o come_v come_v it_o be_v very_o good_a for_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v be_v thus_o afflict_v it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o the_o father_n love_n unto_o you_o he_o will_v bring_v all_o man_n and_o woman_n into_o your_o condition_n more_o or_o less_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o mercy_n may_v shine_v over_o all_o or_o else_o they_o will_v say_v it_o be_v the_o father_n love_n in_o darkness_n appear_v unto_o you_o if_o you_o can_v but_o see_v it_o further_o they_o will_v say_v unto_o their_o hopeless_a friend_n wherefore_o do_v you_o thus_o torment_v your_o own_o soul_n there_o be_v but_o one_o pure_a be_v and_o all_o our_o spirit_n come_v forth_o from_o this_o father_n of_o spirit_n and_o in_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v all_o be_v swallow_v up_o into_o the_o eternal_a be_v again_o wherefore_o then_o do_v you_o talk_v so_o much_o of_o eternal_a damnation_n or_o call_v yourself_o a_o devil_n make_v such_o lamentation_n for_o your_o sin_n as_o if_o you_o can_v possible_o be_v divide_v from_o your_o father_n love_n or_o cast_v out_o of_o his_o glorious_a presence_n i_o bold_o affirm_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n for_o there_o be_v no_o such_o devil_n or_o damnation_n or_o sin_n at_o all_o but_o in_o the_o esteem_n of_o man_n deceive_v so_o to_o think_v by_o their_o fellow_n creature_n which_o ignorant_o lord_n one_o over_o another_o from_o some_o blind_a opinion_n in_o they_o wherefore_o our_o counsel_n be_v that_o you_o will_v hearken_v no_o more_o unto_o vain_a thought_n or_o motion_n or_o imagination_n within_o you_o or_o word_n from_o any_o creature_n without_o you_o as_o to_o become_v so_o weak_a or_o foolish_a
than_o most_o man_n 3_o usual_o they_o will_v talk_v of_o one_o pure_a be_v within_o all_o man_n only_o also_o if_o they_o branch_n forth_o this_o their_o pretend_a god_n unto_o their_o deceive_a hearer_n you_o shall_v hear_v they_o utter_v these_o or_o such_o like_a expression_n brethren_n be_v not_o so_o carnal_o mind_v as_o to_o think_v of_o a_o god_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n sit_v in_o a_o heaven_n above_o the_o star_n but_o mind_n that_o spiritnal_a god_n in_o the_o invisible_a heaven_n of_o your_o heart_n again_o they_o will_v say_v that_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n within_o you_o be_v that_o god_n of_o love_n beauty_n virtue_n with_o all_o variety_n of_o glorious_a perfection_n whatsoever_o if_o you_o be_v but_o once_o acquaint_v with_o it_o wherefore_o if_o fear_v of_o eternal_a damnation_n seize_v upon_o you_o they_o be_v apt_a to_o say_v it_o arise_v from_o your_o ignorant_a conceiving_n of_o a_o god_n and_o a_o heaven_n at_o a_o distance_n again_o for_o manage_v of_o this_o their_o sophistry_n that_o their_o deceit_n may_v not_o be_v perceive_v they_o will_v treat_v upon_o these_o and_o such_o like_a scripture_n christ_n in_o you_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n know_v you_o not_o that_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n as_o he_o be_v so_o be_v we_o in_o this_o present_a world_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v within_o you_o at_o that_o day_n shall_v you_o know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o o_o father_n art_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o even_o that_o they_o may_v be_v also_o one_o in_o we_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o 4_o thus_o they_o wrest_v these_o literal_a scripture_n to_o hide_v their_o fleshly_a glory_n and_o subtle_a hypocrifie_n that_o their_o eternal_a vengeance_n may_v exceed_v all_o man_n in_o this_o age_n at_o the_o visible_a appear_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n 5_o you_o that_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o gift_n of_o spiritual_a distinguish_n between_o perish_v glitter_a word_n and_o glorious_a thing_n which_o be_v eternal_a if_o you_o observe_v these_o sort_n of_o golden_a sophister_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o whatever_o scripture_n they_o treat_v upon_o they_o carry_v it_o in_o a_o allegorical_a notional_a mystery_n of_o nothing_o but_o mere_a empty_a word_n only_o as_o for_o example_n if_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o person_n of_o cain_n and_o abel_n or_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bondwoman_n and_o her_o son_n and_o the_o freewoman_n and_o her_o son_n they_o will_v bid_v you_o look_v within_o you_o and_o you_o may_v see_v they_o all_o there_o in_o seem_a contrariety_n only_o 6_o again_o if_o you_o observe_v these_o man_n you_o shall_v seldom_o or_o ever_o hear_v they_o speak_v of_o any_o thing_n after_o this_o life_n but_o they_o will_v tell_v you_o of_o a_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o man_n in_o this_o life_n but_o as_o concern_v this_o mortal_a soul_n and_o body_n of_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o grave_n or_o death_n and_o quicken_a again_o a_o new_a and_o glorious_a life_n by_o raise_v this_o mortal_a body_n into_o a_o glorify_a condition_n in_o the_o visible_a sight_n of_o itself_o and_o presence_n of_o a_o personal_a god_n elect_a man_n and_o angel_n in_o a_o kingdom_n of_o eternal_a glory_n these_o be_v riddle_n or_o uncertain_a thing_n at_o a_o great_a distance_n 7_o it_o be_v not_o a_o god_n or_o christ_n or_o throne_n of_o eternal_a glory_n above_o the_o star_n which_o no_o mortal_a man_n can_v make_v visible_a unto_o man_n eye_n that_o will_v clothe_v man_n in_o plush-jacket_n and_o feed_v their_o body_n with_o dainty_a delicacy_n no_o no_o the_o infallible_a truth_n concern_v a_o bodily_a resurrection_n of_o a_o purify_a spirit_n unto_o eternal_a glory_n and_o a_o personal_a appear_v of_o a_o impurified_a soul_n unto_o everlasting_a shame_n will_v yield_v no_o such_o peacock_n feather_n nor_o dive_v dish_n as_o those_o be_v the_o apostle_n and_o those_o of_o the_o same_o faith_n with_o they_o will_v one_o day_n personal_o appear_v again_o to_o bear_v record_n unto_o this_o truth_n 8_o my_o brethren_n what_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o those_o man_n which_o glory_n of_o a_o god_n christ_n heaven_n word_n ordinance_n and_o salvation_n without_o they_o and_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n within_o they_o and_o those_o man_n which_o glory_n of_o all_o these_o heavenly_a thing_n within_o they_o and_o yet_o be_v ignorant_a of_o that_o glorious_a personal_a majesty_n and_o throne_n of_o immortality_n without_o they_o 9_o be_v not_o these_o man_n those_o hypocritical_a pharisee_n and_o atheistical_a sadducee_n which_o endeavour_v to_o cover_v their_o nakedness_n with_o inward_a and_o outward_a leaf_n of_o rational_a word_n only_o 10_o do_v not_o all_o man_n which_o confess_v a_o creator_n conclude_v that_o his_o spirit_n be_v infinite_a immortal_a unchangeable_a and_o eternal_a 11_o do_v not_o every_o man_n possess_v a_o distinct_a live_a spirit_n in_o his_o own_o body_n 12_o be_v not_o every_o man_n a_o sinner_n and_o subject_a to_o all_o manner_n of_o loathsome_a disease_n of_o mortality_n 13_o wherefore_o if_o this_o one_o pure_a spirit_n of_o god_n himself_o be_v dwell_v in_o the_o body_n of_o any_o mortal_a man_n whatsoever_o be_v it_o possible_a think_v you_o that_o that_o man_n can_v be_v desirous_a after_o carnal_a copulation_n or_o subject_n unto_o any_o kind_n of_o putrefaction_n whatsoever_o 14_o who_o be_v thou_o then_o poor_a vain_a perish_a clay_n which_o boast_v of_o possess_v of_o a_o most_o holy_a immortal_a spirit_n within_o thou_o and_o yet_o can_v not_o enjoy_v any_o life_n of_o peace_n in_o the_o least_o without_o a_o continual_a supply_n of_o fleshly_a carnality_n without_o thou_o 15_o again_o be_v thou_o capable_a of_o possess_v a_o infinite_a eternal_a spirit_n which_o be_v but_o a_o finite_a piece_n of_o fade_a dust_n 16_o art_n thou_o so_o vain_a in_o thy_o imagination_n as_o to_o think_v that_o such_o a_o changeable_a piece_n of_o confusion_n as_o thou_o be_v can_v possible_o be_v capable_a to_o bear_v about_o thou_o that_o bright_a burn_a glorious_a spirit_n of_o the_o unchangeable_a god_n who_o glory_n be_v above_o all_o heaven_n at_o who_o power_n of_o a_o word_n speak_v all_o kind_n of_o light_n within_o this_o creation_n be_v immediate_o subject_a to_o enter_v into_o silent_a darkness_n as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o have_v any_o be_v 17_o again_o be_v not_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o father_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n 18_o and_o be_v not_o all_o the_o divine_a godhead_n of_o the_o everlasting_a father_n live_v and_o reign_v in_o he_o bodily_a 19_o and_o be_v this_o spirit_n any_o more_o than_o one_o spirit_n unite_v unto_o that_o one_o body_n of_o glorious_a flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 20_o and_o be_v not_o all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n hide_v in_o this_o jesus_n only_o and_o be_v it_o not_o from_o his_o fullness_n that_o we_o all_o receive_v grace_n for_o grace_n 21_o if_o we_o have_v any_o true_a light_n at_o all_o rule_n in_o we_o if_o this_o be_v truth_n which_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o notional_a atheist_n or_o bloody_a mind_a formallist_n what_o be_v thou_o then_o but_o that_o outcast_a angellical_a reprobate_n which_o do_v not_o only_o divide_v the_o godhead_n spirit_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n but_o impudent_o affirm_v that_o thou_o and_o all_o of_o thy_o opinion_n do_v possess_v the_o very_a godhead_n spirit_n within_o you_o 22_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o like_o a_o devil_n incarnate_a as_o thou_o be_v thou_o curse_v those_o that_o discover_v this_o thy_o horrible_a blasphemy_n 23_o again_o thou_o which_o carry_v thy_o god_n about_o thou_o where_o ever_o thou_o be_v when_o thou_o have_v breathe_v out_o thy_o sinful_a soul_n and_o all_o thy_o light_n or_o life_n into_o silent_a dust_n or_o death_n where_o then_o be_v thy_o inward_a god_n and_o self_n become_v 24_o but_o it_o may_v be_v thou_o will_v reply_v and_o say_v thy_o soul_n be_v immortal_a and_o can_v die_v to_o this_o lie_a conceit_n of_o thou_o i_o answer_v by_o way_n of_o quere_z 25_o do_v thou_o indeed_o believe_v any_o truth_n in_o scripture_n record_n 26_o if_o thou_o reply_v thou_o do_v than_o my_o quere_z be_v this_o whether_o thou_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v in_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n on_o this_o earth_n be_v not_o as_o immortal_a as_o any_o other_o man_n be_v or_o rather_o immortal_a alone_o and_o all_o other_o mortal_a beside_o he_o 27_o well_o then_o if_o i_o prove_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n die_v and_o
be_v with_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n for_o though_o that_o inshining_a light_n and_o life_n be_v of_o the_o very_a same_o nature_n of_o god_n himself_o yet_o if_o his_o spirit_n shall_v whole_o retain_v its_o glorious_a brightness_n within_o his_o own_o body_n all_o its_o former_a light_n or_o life_n will_v either_o be_v subject_a to_o be_v defile_v as_o adam_n be_v or_o else_o it_o will_v perish_v for_o want_v of_o the_o renew_n presence_n of_o his_o glorious_a spirit_n 8_o again_o through_o that_o consolation_n flow_v from_o the_o inshining_a light_n of_o the_o sun_n you_o know_v in_o all_o sensible_a or_o rational_a creature_n there_o be_v a_o desire_n to_o behold_v that_o bright_a shine_a face_n from_o whence_o their_o joy_n proceed_v 9_o so_o likewise_o through_o that_o spiritual_a joy_n and_o hope_n of_o glory_n flow_v from_o the_o inspire_a light_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n there_o be_v as_o strong_a desire_n in_o those_o that_o enjoy_v this_o light_n to_o behold_v that_o glorious_a face_n from_o whence_o it_o proceed_v 10_o again_o if_o the_o sun_n have_v not_o a_o distinct_a body_n or_o face_n to_o give_v forth_o his_o light_n into_o the_o creation_n you_o know_v there_o can_v be_v no_o sunshine_n at_o all_o 11_o so_o likewise_o you_o may_v also_o know_v that_o if_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n have_v not_o a_o person_n or_o immortal_a face_n to_o display_v the_o sunbeam_n of_o his_o heavenly_a glory_n into_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n there_o can_v be_v no_o god_n all_o all_o 12_o therefore_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o all_o that_o light_n life_n or_o glory_n shine_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o elect_a man_n or_o angel_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o a_o god_n or_o christ_n within_o they_o but_o from_o a_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o a_o god_n or_o a_o christ_n without_o they_o too_o transcendent_a glorious_a to_o be_v possess_v by_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n or_o man_n as_o beforesaid_a 13_o again_o though_o the_o natural_a life_n of_o create_a being_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n be_v continue_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o inshining_a light_n of_o the_o sun_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o what_o ever_o joy_v the_o creature_n be_v possess_v thereby_o it_o do_v neither_o add_v nor_o diminish_v unto_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o least_o 14_o so_o likewise_o though_o the_o spiritual_a light_n of_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n be_v everlasting_o continue_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o inshining_a light_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n yet_o you_o may_v also_o understand_v that_o what_o joy_n or_o glory_n soever_o the_o creature_n be_v possess_v withal_o that_o it_o do_v neither_o add_v nor_o diminish_v the_o creator_n glory_n in_o the_o least_o therefore_o you_o which_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v understand_v that_o if_o any_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v be_v possess_v with_o the_o indwelling_a essence_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n it_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v avoid_v but_o he_o must_v become_v infinite_a immortal_a unchangeable_a and_o eternal_a even_o as_o the_o creator_n himself_o be_v 15_o again_o whether_o creature_n be_v possess_v with_o joy_n or_o sorrow_n life_n or_o death_n by_o a_o extraordinary_a light_n proceed_v from_o the_o sun_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o according_a to_o his_o understanding_n he_o glory_v in_o himself_o equal_o in_o reference_n unto_o what_o be_v effect_v by_o he_o so_o likewise_o whether_o creature_n be_v possess_v with_o spiritual_a joy_n or_o sorrow_n eternal_a life_n o●_n death_n by_o a_o more_o than_o ordinary_a presence_n or_o absence_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n yet_o you_o may_v also_o understand_v that_o the_o most_o glorious_a god_n equal_o rejoice_v in_o himself_o in_o relation_n unto_o what_o be_v produce_v 16_o again_o though_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sun_n through_o it_o be_v cretae_v brightness_n be_v so_o exceed_o glorious_a that_o it_o be_v utter_o uncapable_a of_o natural_a pollution_n from_o any_o creature_n within_o its_o orb_n yet_o you_o know_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o power_n in_o measure_n qualify_v with_o a_o suitable_a capacity_n to_o receive_v his_o in_o shine_a light_n be_v rather_o harden_v or_o destroy_v by_o his_o appearance_n than_o any_o way_n comfort_v or_o revive_v in_o the_o least_o witness_v the_o fire_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o of_o a_o adamantine_a nature_n 17_o so_o likewise_o it_o be_v with_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o everlasting_a creator_n for_o though_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n in_o its_o own_o nature_n be_v so_o infinite_o pure_a that_o if_o it_o be_v his_o divine_a pleasure_n it_o destroy_v all_o impurity_n immediate_o and_o whole_o convert_v a_o pollute_a creature_n into_o its_o own_o divine_a likeness_n you_o may_v also_o know_v that_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n by_o his_o power_n be_v not_o in_o some_o measure_n qualify_v to_o receive_v his_o glorious_a incomes_a instead_o of_o dissolve_v their_o spirit_n into_o a_o soft_a and_o sweet_a pleasantness_n it_o harden_v their_o legal_a spirit_n with_o envy_n against_o the_o creator_n like_v unto_o brass_n or_o the_o nether-milstone_n according_a to_o that_o of_o paul_n where_o he_o say_v they_o be_v a_o sweet_a savour_n unto_o god_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n in_o they_o that_o be_v save_v and_o of_o death_n unto_o death_n in_o they_o that_o perish_v chap._n xvii_o 1_o no_o man_n salvation_n or_o damnation_n lie_v in_o his_o own_o will_n but_o in_o the_o prerogative_n of_o god_n 2_o divers_a absurdity_n which_o follow_v from_o the_o opinion_n that_o christ_n be_v only_o within_o man_n 3_o a_o question_n and_o answer_v concern_v a_o twofold_a presence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o creature_n 4_o if_o the_o essential_a spirit_n be_v unite_v unto_o creature_n it_o can_v not_o be_v infinite_a this_o i_o will_v glad_o have_v man_n and_o woman_n to_o understand_v which_o be_v elect_v unto_o glory_n that_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n or_o damnation_n of_o create_a being_n lie_v not_o in_o the_o will_n power_n or_o desire_v of_o man_n or_o angel_n or_o in_o any_o divine_a light_n receive_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o make_v they_o but_o only_o within_o the_o glorious_a breast_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n himself_o 2_o that_o neither_o elect_a man_n nor_o angel_n may_v glory_v in_o themselves_o or_o render_v praise_n honour_n power_n wisdom_n or_o salvation_n unto_o any_o spiritual_a light_n joy_n or_o glory_n whatsoever_o why_o because_o that_o be_v but_o the_o sun_n beam_n of_o life_n eternal_a shine_v in_o they_o but_o as_o most_o due_a be_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o light_n they_o may_v return_v all_o praise_n and_o glory_n unto_o that_o infinite_a majesty_n upon_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n without_o they_o 3_o wherefore_o you_o know_v it_o be_v write_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o that_o will_v or_o in_o he_o that_o run_v but_o in_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n also_o it_o be_v write_v to_o will_n be_v present_a but_o how_o to_o perform_v i_o know_v not_o also_o it_o be_v write_v every_o branch_n that_o bear_v not_o fruit_n in_o i_o he_o take_v away_o and_o every_o one_o that_o bear_v fruit_n he_o purge_v that_o it_o may_v bring_v forth_o more_o fruit_n now_o you_o be_v clean_a through_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o you_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n 4_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o any_o man_n whether_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o his_o own_o body_n when_o he_o speak_v those_o word_n unto_o his_o apostle_n or_o disciple_n 5_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v it_o be_v which_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o reprobate_n than_o that_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v be_v the_o essential_a spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o a_o spiritual_a word_n proceed_v through_o his_o mouth_n from_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o infinite_a glory_n as_o it_o do_v former_o on_o this_o earth_n the_o footstool_n of_o his_o divine_a majesty_n 6_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o other_o spiritual_a god_n or_o christ_n but_o what_o dwell_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n then_o of_o necessity_n this_o must_v follow_v that_o every_o man_n and_o angel_n be_v a_o god_n or_o christ_n to_o himself_o 7_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o many_o thousand_o shall_v be_v so_o easy_o persuade_v of_o attain_v to_o a_o perfection_n in_o this_o mortality_n if_o they_o be_v possess_v with_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 8_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n o●_n creator_n but_o within_o man_n only_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v for_o what_o end_n man_n so_o mighty_o contend_v with_o one_o another_o about_o a_o god_n or_o worship_n due_a unto_o he_o 9_o or_o why_o they_o vex_v
one_o another_o by_o writing_n or_o speaking_n unless_o they_o be_v hurry_v on_o for_o silver_n or_o a_o everlasting_a name_n 10_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n or_o christ_n but_o within_o man_n conscience_n only_o be_v it_o not_o one_o of_o the_o mad_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n for_o man_n to_o talk_v of_o rebellion_n against_o the_o divine_a majesty_n or_o of_o any_o cruelty_n act_v between_o man_n and_o man_n whatsoever_o 11_o be_v not_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n all_o wisdom_n power_n glory_n love_n meekness_n patience_n long-suffering_a justice_n righteousness_n yea_o salvation_n itself_o or_o condemnation_n to_o who_o it_o please_v for_o manifest_v the_o glory_n of_o its_o power_n 12_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o none_o can_v will_n or_o dare_v deny_v this_o truth_n but_o reprobate_n wherefore_o if_o the_o very_a spirit_n of_o god_n be_v live_v within_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n can_v there_o possible_o then_o be_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o a_o godlike_a harmony_n between_o they_o 13_o be_v not_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o christ_n jesus_n in_o itself_o a_o glorious_a order_n and_o be_v not_o every_o man_n live_v at_o variance_n within_o himself_o and_o so_o at_o the_o best_a be_v but_o a_o disorderly_a piece_n of_o contradiction_n or_o confusion_n in_o himself_o 14_o if_o this_o be_v truth_n which_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o vain_a glorious_a cast_v aways_o how_o then_o think_v you_o it_o possible_a that_o any_o mortal_a man_n that_o be_v but_o pollute_a dust_n shall_v be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwelling_a essence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o if_o he_o enjoy_v the_o eternal_a spirit_n what_o can_v be_v in_o he_o but_o a_o glorious_a harmony_n 15_o if_o not_o create_v be_v be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwelling_a essence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n because_o of_o its_o incomprehensible_a glory_n but_o it_o be_v own_o body_n only_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v infinite_a what_o person_n place_n or_o creature_n can_v be_v exclude_v of_o its_o invisible_a presence_n from_o that_o light_n of_o life_n eternal_a 16_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v there_o be_v a_o twofold_a invisible_a presence_n of_o god_n in_o all_o sensible_a or_o insensible_a being_n that_o have_v any_o light_n or_o virtue_n in_o they_o 17_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a presence_n of_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o creation_n which_o shall_v perish_v and_o come_v to_o confusion_n for_o everlasting_a 18_o also_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a presence_n of_o god_n in_o elect_a mankind_n by_o virtue_n of_o redemption_n which_o glorious_o increase_v and_o continue_v to_o all_o eternity_n 19_o again_o what_o ever_o natural_a wise_a man_n imagine_v or_o think_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o truth_n itself_o i_o declare_v that_o all_o create_v natural_a light_n life_n or_o joy_n both_o visible_a and_o invisible_a shall_v become_v utter_a darkness_n and_o a_o chaos_n of_o everlasting_a confusion_n because_o though_o it_o make_v not_o itself_o it_o be_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o spirit_n that_o make_v it_o as_o light_v and_o darkness_n or_o life_n and_o death_n 20_o who_o ever_o thou_o be_v unto_o who_o this_o seem_v strange_a if_o thou_o be_v in_o nature_n as_o wise_a as_o solomon_n yet_o if_o thou_o have_v no_o distinction_n in_o thou_o between_o this_o natural_a perish_a god_n of_o time_n and_o that_o spiritual_a flourish_a god_n of_o eternity_n as_o yet_o thou_o be_v in_o utter_a darkness_n concern_v any_o heavenly_a thing_n whatsoever_o 21_o though_o all_o natural_a or_o spiritual_a light_n do_v virtual_o flow_v from_o the_o divine_a spirit_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n yet_o if_o that_o eternal_a spirit_n be_v not_o a_o glorious_a be_v distinct_a from_o all_o create_a being_n it_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v infinite_a 22_o why_o because_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o infinite_a life_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o bigness_n or_o bulk_n of_o thing_n but_o in_o its_o exceed_a brightness_n of_o wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n in_o itself_o in_o that_o it_o can_v contain_v its_o infinite_a brightness_n within_o its_o own_o person_n only_o or_o let_v forth_o his_o inshining_a glory_n by_o degree_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o elect_a man_n or_o angel_n as_o it_o please_v he_o 23_o though_o all_o light_n or_o life_n in_o man_n or_o angel_n proceed_v from_o the_o natural_a or_o divine_a presence_n of_o the_o one_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n himself_o yet_o if_o that_o eternal_a spirit_n be_v essential_o unite_v unto_o those_o creature_n it_o can_v not_o possible_o then_o be_v infinite_a 24_o to_o be_v essential_o dwell_v within_o all_o live_a thing_n be_v not_o infiniteness_n but_o finitness_n but_o as_o beforesaid_a to_o be_v a_o glorious_a be_v in_o itself_o in_o the_o bigness_n of_o man_n and_o essential_o distinct_a from_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n and_o man_n and_o yet_o from_o so_o small_a a_o compass_n though_o at_o never_o so_o small_a a_o distance_n all_o create_a being_n in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n to_o be_v virtual_o fill_v with_o his_o divine_a or_o natural_a presence_n in_o their_o measure_n according_a to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o his_o good_a will_n by_o a_o word_n speak_v in_o this_o be_v all_o infiniteness_n indeed_o 25_o if_o there_o be_v no_o god_n or_o creator_n at_o all_o but_o what_o do_v live_v increated_a being_n than_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o all_o being_n and_o their_o indwelling_a god_n may_v eternal_o vanish_v together_o because_o there_o be_v that_o in_o they_o which_o be_v more_o natural_a to_o provoke_v they_o all_o to_o murder_v one_o another_o and_o kill_v themselves_o than_o the_o good_a of_o one_o another_o for_o alas_o you_o know_v that_o it_o be_v both_o a_o common_a and_o easy_a thing_n oftentimes_o with_o small_a mean_n for_o man_n to_o destroy_v themselves_o or_o one_o another_o and_o be_v it_o not_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n as_o easy_a total_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o the_o creation_n at_o once_o 26_o if_o this_o be_v truth_n which_o no_o sober_a man_n can_v deny_v what_o then_o will_v become_v of_o man_n and_o their_o christ_n if_o this_o total_a dissolution_n at_o once_o shall_v fall_v upon_o they_o 27_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n be_v so_o infinite_o vast_a boundless_a or_o that_o it_o be_v both_o the_o light_n and_o life_n of_o all_o spiritual_a or_o natural_a thing_n or_o place_n whatsoever_o as_o be_v abundant_o declare_v some_o unsatisfy_a man_n in_o this_o point_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o that_o to_o confine_v this_o incomprehensible_a spirit_n of_o the_o omnipresent_v god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n into_o one_o single_a person_n and_o place_n at_o once_o like_a unto_o a_o poor_a mortal_a man_n seem_v unto_o we_o a_o imprison_n of_o infiniteness_n into_o a_o narrow_a compass_n instead_o of_o declare_v its_o incomprehensible_a glory_n from_o a_o divine_a gift_n of_o life_n eternal_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v 28_o be_v it_o not_o rather_o a_o imprison_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n and_o rob_v he_o whole_o of_o his_o infinite_a glory_n for_o any_o man_n to_o divide_v his_o most_o bless_a majesty_n into_o distinct_a person_n or_o to_o divide_v his_o godhead_n spirit_n into_o all_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n leave_v no_o throne_n or_o person_n for_o the_o divine_a glory_n to_o be_v in_o but_o his_o create_a being_n only_o 29_o in_o stead_n of_o honour_v that_o spirit_n within_o the_o glorious_a person_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n do_v not_o those_o man_n that_o affirm_v the_o indwel_n of_o that_o infinite_a spirit_n in_o the_o whole_a creation_n not_o only_o share_v the_o divine_a glory_n and_o godhead_n title_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n among_o the_o lie_a creature_n but_o also_o whole_o deny_v any_o other_o creator_n or_o eternal_a spirit_n within_o or_o without_o man_n but_o perish_v nature_n only_o whatever_o they_o pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_a 30_o what_o dishonour_n or_o disadvantage_n be_v it_o unto_o a_o infinite_a spirit_n to_o possess_v his_o ravish_a glory_n to_o himself_o within_o a_o distinct_a body_n of_o his_o own_o nay_o be_v it_o not_o altogether_o advantageous_a unto_o his_o divine_a majesty_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o other_o way_n for_o alas_o you_o know_v that_o it_o stand_v to_o good_a sense_n or_o reason_n that_o if_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n be_v only_o a_o invisible_a spirit_n dwell_v within_o the_o creation_n he_o can_v not_o the●_n possess_v any_o new_a joy_n or_o ravish_a glory_n to_o himself_o but_o the_o whole_a creation_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n must_v be_v partaker_n with_o he_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o 31_o therefore_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o those_o man_n that_o talk_v of_o a_o
god_n or_o a_o christ_n live_v in_o man_n conscience_n only_o and_o can_v endure_v to_o hear_v of_o a_o distinct_a personal_a god_n upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n in_o the_o heaven_n above_o the_o star_n 32_o what_o ever_o godlike_a shape_n they_o appear_v in_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v but_o freewill_n redemptionist_n or_o refine_a naturalist_n at_o the_o best_a and_o all_o their_o speaking_o though_o mix_v with_o many_o word_n of_o truth_n tend_v to_o nothing_o else_o but_o meritorious_a popery_n from_o themselves_o and_o tyrannical_a prelacy_n over_o one_o another_o chap._n xviii_o 1_o a_o discourse_n that_o the_o divine_a be_v be_v clothe_v with_o flesh_n and_o bone_n 2_o how_o god_n know_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n 3_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o god_n take_v upon_o he_o humane_a nature_n 4_o what_o the_o form_n of_o god_n be_v before_o he_o become_v flesh_n 5_o no_o spirit_n can_v enjoy_v happiness_n or_o misery_n without_o a_o body_n be_v not_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n and_o man_n as_o they_o be_v create_v being_n sub●ect_v to_o change_v or_o to_o be_v change_v 2_o do_v not_o all_o man_n that_o acknowledge_v a_o creator_n conclude_v that_o his_o spirit_n be_v infinite_a unchangeable_a immortal_a and_o eternal_a as_o beforesaid_a 3_o wherefore_o if_o this_o infinite_a or_o boundless_a spirit_n of_o the_o eternal_a majesty_n be_v dwell_v within_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v it_o possible_o be_v avoid_v but_o every_o thing_n than_o will_v become_v infinite_a unchangeable_a immortal_a and_o eternal_a in_o itself_o as_o he_o be_v 4_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o glorious_a spirit_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n by_o title_n a_o consume_a fire_n and_o everlasting_a burn_n 5_o o_o all_o you_o lucepherian_a despiser_n of_o a_o glorious_a god_n in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o man_n wonder_n and_o perish_v at_o a_o miracle_n of_o all_o miracle_n that_o shall_v be_v declare_v unto_o the_o general_a view_n of_o man_n in_o this_o place_n 6_o wherefore_o behold_v you_o elect_v and_o precious_a jewel_n of_o divine_a glory_n though_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o your_o creator_n and_o redeemer_n be_v of_o so_o fiery_a glorious_a a_o nature_n that_o neither_o fire_n air_n earth_n water_n sun_n moon_n star_n heaven_n earth_n angel_n man_n nor_o any_o thing_n else_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwel_n of_o it_o one_o moment_n without_o be_v consume_v to_o ash_n dust_n sand_n or_o powder_n yet_o this_o infinite_a bright_a burn_a spirit_n be_v contain_v within_o a_o single_a person_n of_o flesh_n and_o bone_n glorify_v 7_o yea_o and_o be_v so_o unite_a unto_o it_o that_o all_o its_o divine_a pleasure_n natural_o flow_v from_o its_o essential_a owness_n to_o all_o eternity_n 8_o insomuch_o that_o from_o that_o unerring_a spirit_n i_o positive_o declare_v against_o man_n or_o angel_n that_o this_o fiery_a glorious_a spirit_n can_v possible_o possess_v any_o sensible_a live_a being_n out_o of_o that_o bless_a body_n of_o flesh_n and_o bone_n in_o glory_n no_o more_o than_o the_o mortal_a soul_n of_o a_o man_n can_v live_v without_o its_o natural_a body_n of_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n in_o shame_n 9_o though_o the_o heavenly_a body_n of_o the_o eternal_a majesty_n be_v very_a flesh_n and_o bone_n itself_o yet_o i_o will_v glad_o have_v you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a to_o understand_v that_o through_o the_o indwel_n of_o its_o godhead_n spirit_n it_o be_v so_o fiery_a glorious_a that_o neither_o man_n nor_o angel_n can_v behold_v his_o fa●●_n and_o live_v unless_o their_o spirit_n be_v strengthen_v by_o virtue_n of_o its_o inshining_a excellency_n 10_o though_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o the_o everliving_a god_n be_v very_a flesh_n and_o bone_n yet_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o its_o clear_a than_o crystal_n bright_a than_o the_o sun_n swift_a than_o thought_n yea_o and_o infinite_o more_o soft_a than_o down_n and_o sweet_a than_o rose_n 11_o you_o may_v also_o know_v that_o the_o visible_a sight_n of_o so_o glorious_a a_o face_n be_v that_o which_o will_v eternal_o ravish_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n 12_o you_o may_v also_o understand_v that_o though_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n glorify_v be_v very_a flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o a_o burn_a bright_a swift_a soft_a sweet_a nature_n beyond_o all_o expression_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n yet_o it_o be_v of_o a_o immortal_a fiery_a glorious_a softness_n or_o sweetness_n and_o not_o of_o a_o mortal_a fiery_a nature_n mix_v together_o as_o the_o most_o soft_a or_o sweet_a of_o pleasure_n in_o this_o world_n be_v 13_o though_o the_o infinite_a spirit_n of_o the_o unchangeable_a god_n be_v clothe_v with_o his_o eternal_a son_n beforesaid_a which_o be_v too_o pure_a to_o be_v subject_v by_o sin_n wrath_n death_n hell_n or_o the_o grave_n yet_o you_o that_o be_v true_o enlighten_v from_o on_o high_a may_v know_v that_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o wisdom_n or_o transcendent_a glory_n he_o perfect_o see_v through_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n and_o man_n at_o once_o and_o know_v all_o motion_n thought_n desire_n word_n or_o action_n in_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o without_o charge_v his_o spiritual_a memory_n in_o the_o least_o 14_o therefore_o it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n pass_v to_o and_o fro_o through_o the_o earth_n behold_v the_o just_a and_o the_o unjust_a and_o the_o lord_n know_v that_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v vain_a and_o his_o imagination_n be_v evil_a and_o only_o evil_a and_o continual_o evil_a and_o all_o evil_a thing_n that_o be_v do_v now_o in_o secret_a with_o delight_n shall_v be_v reveal_v upon_o the_o house_n top_n or_o head_n of_o man_n understanding_n soon_o enough_o and_o with_o sorrow_n pain_n and_o shame_n enough_o what_o ever_o be_v think_v or_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_n 15_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n be_v so_o infinite_o glorious_a that_o no_o create_v be_v be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwel_n of_o its_o divine_a godhead_n some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o have_v not_o that_o man_n christ_n call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o be_v on_o the_o woman_n part_n from_o the_o loin_n of_o mary_n his_o mother_n as_o well_o as_o other_o child_n if_o this_o be_v truth_n which_o the_o scripture_n clear_o demonstrate_v how_o then_o can_v that_o child_n jesus_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwel_n of_o a_o infinite_a spirit_n any_o more_o than_o any_o other_o child_n whatsoever_o 16_o unto_o this_o curious_a query_n from_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n i_o answer_v though_o that_o child_n christ_n jesus_n have_v beginning_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o his_o virgin_n mother_n as_o all_o child_n have_v yet_o he_o be_v that_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n which_o from_o eternity_n be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n in_o form_n like_o a_o man_n therefore_o when_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o virgin_n womb_n he_o lay_v down_o his_o infinite_a spiritual_a glory_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o godhead_n power_n that_o he_o may_v be_v capable_a to_o transmute_v create_v or_o conceive_v himself_o of_o the_o virgin_n seed_n into_o a_o condition_n of_o pure_a flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n in_o a_o new_a and_o wonderful_a way_n for_o a_o everlasting_a astonishment_n unto_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n 17_o wherefore_o the_o virgin_n mary_n his_o mother_n be_v forewarn_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o his_o glorious_a and_o gracious_a purpose_n that_o her_o soul_n may_v be_v prepare_v for_o that_o marvellous_a income_v of_o her_o only_a god_n and_o saviour_n to_o become_v the_o redeemer_n of_o his_o elect_a people_n from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o fear_v of_o eternal_a death_n 18_o it_o be_v write_v great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n which_o be_v god_n be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n see_v of_o angel_n preach_v unto_o the_o gentile_n believe_v on_o in_o the_o world_n receive_v up_o to_o glory_n again_o it_o be_v write_v who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n but_o he_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n and_o take_v on_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n 19_o be_v there_o any_o more_o than_o one_o god_n and_o be_v not_o christ_n the_o form_n of_o this_o invisible_a god_n before_o he_o become_v the_o person_n of_o a_o man_n and_o do_v not_o that_o spiritual_a form_n of_o christ_n jesus_n enter_v into_o the_o virgin_n womb_n and_o become_v a_o pure_a natural_a form_n 20_o moreover_o be_v not_o christ_n and_o his_o father_n only_o one_o uncreated_a heavenly_a person_n from_o all_o eternity_n 21_o though_o i_o undoubtable_o affirm_v that_o christ_n jesus_n eternal_o be_v the_o divine_a form_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o have_v any_o man_n imagine_v or_o think_v that_o i_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v the_o creator_n to_o be_v a_o body_n
earth_n unto_o he_o that_o love_v we_o and_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n will_v pour_v clean_a water_n upon_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v clean_a he_o die_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o quicken_v in_o the_o spirit_n 8_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v true_o enlighten_v from_o on_o high_a may_v see_v a_o little_a into_o that_o wonderful_a mystery_n of_o the_o only_a wise_a god_n imanife_v itself_o in_o earth_n answerable_a unto_o his_o threefold_a record_n in_o the_o heaven_n beforesaid_a 9_o three_o glorious_a word_n name_n title_n or_o distinction_n in_o reference_n unto_o one_o divine_a person_n only_o in_o a_o threefold_a manifestation_n of_o his_o spiritual_a glory_n unto_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n chap._n xxii_o 1_o of_o the_o three_o witness_n on_o earth_n 2_o of_o spirit_n water_n and_o blood_n 3_o the_o three_o record_n on_o earth_n be_v the_o three_o commission_n 4_o what_o the_o commission_n be_v see_v all_o spiritual_a power_n and_o wisdom_n in_o heaven_n above_o or_o in_o earth_n beneath_o be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v nor_o never_o be_v but_o only_o within_o the_o divine_a ark_n or_o spiritual_a person_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 2_o in_o the_o next_o place_n by_o his_o own_o light_n in_o some_o measure_n i_o shall_v remonstrate_v unto_o you_o that_o be_v capable_a what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o those_o three_o witness_n of_o water_n blood_n and_o spirit_n in_o earth_n which_o agree_v in_o one_o unto_o which_o the_o forego_n word_n have_v relation_n of_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n which_o be_v but_o one_o 3_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n be_v not_o those_o three_o witness_n in_o earth_n the_o commissionated_a messenger_n which_o by_o voice_n or_o word_n through_o the_o glorious_a mouth_n of_o god_n himself_o be_v send_v forth_o unto_o a_o unbelieving_a bloody_a worldly_a mind_a people_n for_o a_o witness_n unto_o they_o to_o this_o purpose_n at_o the_o unexpected_a dreadful_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 4_o do_v not_o that_o water_n witness_n in_o earth_n signify_v moses_n and_o the_o true_a prophet_n under_o the_o law_n in_o reference_n unto_o the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n 5_o do_v not_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o blood_n in_o earth_n signify_v jesus_n and_o the_o choose_a apostle_n in_o relation_n of_o that_o heavenly_a name_n of_o god_n the_o eternal_a son_n 6_o do_v not_o that_o witness_n of_o holy_a ghost_n in_o earth_n signify_v those_o two_o witness_n in_o the_o 11._o of_o the_o revelation_n 7_o as_o water_n blood_n and_o spirit_n mix_v together_o be_v in_o a_o sweet_a harmony_n in_o the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n in_o perfect_a health_n and_o through_o a_o defect_n of_o either_o of_o they_o the_o body_n can_v not_o subsist_v 8_o so_o likewise_o it_o be_v with_o those_o witness_n of_o god_n in_o earth_n call_v spirit_n water_n and_o blood_n for_o these_o three_o sweet_o unite_v bear_a witness_n unto_o but_o one_o only_a wise_a distinct_a personal_a god_n glorify_v 9_o therefore_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o heavenly_a harmony_n and_o can_v possible_o be_v one_o without_o the_o other_o not_o only_o because_o they_o proceed_v from_o one_o glorious_a spirit_n but_o also_o because_o they_o three_o only_o by_o the_o secret_a wisdom_n of_o the_o eternal_a majesty_n be_v choose_v to_o bear_v witness_n in_o earth_n before_o man_n and_o angel_n unto_o that_o threefold_a record_n in_o heaven_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n aforesaid_a 10_o but_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n be_v witness_v unto_o by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n already_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o this_o three_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o earth_n or_o what_o do_v it_o bear_v record_n unto_o 11_o from_o a_o divine_a gift_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v in_o many_o respect_n there_o be_v as_o much_o use_n of_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o this_o atheistical_a age_n as_o of_o the_o two_o former_a witness_n of_o water_n and_o blood_n 12_o to_o fulfil_v the_o scripture_n which_o say_v heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v away_o but_o his_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v away_o or_o not_o one_o title_n of_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v unfulfil_v 13_o how_o shall_v christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n of_o glory_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o only_a god_n of_o truth_n if_o there_o be_v not_o at_o one_o time_n or_o another_o a_o three_o witness_n in_o earth_n to_o fulfil_v the_o scripture_n for_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v witness_n in_o earth_n 14_o another_o necessity_n of_o this_o three_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v this_o because_o you_o may_v know_v that_o there_o have_v not_o be_v above_o these_o thousand_o year_n a_o commissionated_a messenger_n send_v forth_o by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n to_o bear_v witness_n unto_o that_o truth_n which_o the_o two_o former_a witness_n seal_v too_o with_o their_o blood_n 15_o another_o necessity_n of_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v this_o because_o of_o late_a and_o at_o present_a so_o many_o several_a antichristian_a spirit_n be_v come_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n in_o their_o own_o name_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o their_o own_o strong_a imagination_n and_o cunning_a curse_a observation_n have_v act_v many_o visible_a lie_a sign_n and_o wonder_n upon_o their_o own_o body_n and_o other_o way_n to_o the_o ruine_n of_o many_o a_o poor_a deceive_v soul_n in_o body_n mind_n and_o personal_a estate_n all_o of_o they_o pretend_v when_o those_o fleshly_a fit_n come_v upon_o they_o that_o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n immediate_o move_v they_o chap_n xxiii_o 1_o of_o several_a empty_a opinion_n concern_v the_o two_o witness_n in_o the_o eleven_o of_o the_o revelation_n 2_o what_o they_o be_v 3_o no_o true_a witness_n without_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n 4_o who_o be_v the_o two_o last_o spiritual_a witness_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v write_v somewhat_o of_o man_n empty_a opinion_n concern_v the_o two_o witness_n in_o the_o revelation_n for_o your_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o ensue_a truth_n some_o man_n have_v imagine_v they_o to_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n 2_o now_o you_o may_v know_v that_o can_v be_v because_o the_o spirit_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v both_o glorify_v together_o in_o the_o high_a heaven_n long_o before_o john_n prophesy_v of_o the_o two_o witness_n stand_v before_o the_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 3_o other_o there_o be_v that_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v the_o literal_a law_n and_o gospel_n now_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v also_o know_v that_o can_v be_v the_o witness_n here_o speak_v of_o because_o without_o a_o true_a interpreter_n the_o scripture_n in_o itself_o be_v but_o a_o kill_a letter_n 4_o you_o know_v that_o the_o invisible_a truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n proceed_v only_o from_o a_o true_a light_n receive_v from_o the_o spiritual_a person_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n in_o the_o throne_n of_o immortal_a glory_n 5_o you_o know_v that_o from_o the_o bare_a record_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o only_a very_o true_a god_n or_o the_o spiritual_a mystery_n of_o his_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o that_o be_v the_o very_a cause_n of_o these_o and_o such_o like_a scripture_n say_n i_o thank_v thou_o father_n that_o thou_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a and_o prudent_a and_o have_v reveal_v they_o to_o babe_n make_v the_o heart_n of_o this_o people_n fat_a which_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o car_n and_o hear_v not_o heart_n and_o understand_v not_o and_o why_o so_o to_o fulfil_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v through_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n 6_o if_o the_o two_o witness_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n what_o need_v then_o will_v there_o be_v of_o the_o invisible_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n 7_o for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v not_o the_o minister_n and_o people_n set_v up_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o offer_v divine_a worship_n unto_o they_o as_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n worship_v their_o golden_a calf_n 8_o the_o two_o witness_n can_v be_v mean_v the_o literal_a scripture_n because_o it_o be_v say_v if_o any_o man_n will_v hurt_v they_o fire_n proceed_v out_o of_o their_o mouth_n and_o devour_v their_o enemy_n and_o if_o any_o hurt_v they_o in_o this_o manner_n they_o must_v be_v kill_v 9_o now_o you_o may_v know_v that_o at_o this_o very_a present_a there_o be_v many_o thousand_o in_o these_o three_o nation_n that_o do_v not_o only_o count_v the_o scripture_n mere_a invention_n of_o wise_a man_n to_o keep_v the_o
body_n then_o shall_v thou_o know_v that_o thou_o do_v hear_v of_o a_o personal_a god_n infinite_o glorious_a for_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n or_o man_n to_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o indwelling_a essence_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n chap._n xxv_o 1_o of_o the_o sinful_a soul_n of_o man_n 2_o of_o its_o mortality_n 3_o all_o soul_n that_o be_v generate_v be_v mortal_a 4_o if_o man_n soul_n be_v immortal_a they_o can_v not_o be_v capable_a of_o disease_n can_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o but_o dust_n without_o their_o body_n or_o can_v their_o body_n be_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o but_o dry_a dead_a cold_a dust_n also_o without_o their_o spirit_n 2_o do_v not_o the_o rational_a soul_n or_o spirit_n of_o man_n lie_v secret_o hide_v in_o his_o seed_n like_a unto_o a_o spark_n of_o fire_n and_o can_v this_o seed_n of_o man_n have_v any_o live_n be_v without_o its_o body_n 3_o can_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o man_n be_v therefore_o any_o more_o than_o one_o distinct_a live_a or_o die_v essence_n 4_o when_o a_o woman_n conceive_v life_n in_o her_o womb_n through_o mixture_n of_o seed_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o free_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v at_o the_o first_o creation_n of_o nature_n be_v not_o that_o life_n the_o very_a soul_n or_o spirit_n of_o the_o child_n 5_o do_v not_o that_o soul_n or_o spirit_n in_o the_o womb_n by_o degree_n congeal_v together_o into_o rational_a fire_n blood_n and_o water_n and_o so_o in_o due_a time_n become_v a_o complete_a body_n of_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n 6_o if_o man_n and_o woman_n together_o beget_v and_o conceive_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o the_o child_n by_o a_o instinct_n in_o nature_n which_o none_o can_v gainsay_v but_o senseless_a sot_n or_o conceit_a wise_a man_n which_o through_o a_o ambition_n of_o tongue_n or_o language_n have_v study_v beyond_o all_o sober_a sense_n reason_n or_o wit_n 7_o be_v it_o then_o possible_a think_v you_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v immortal_a and_o the_o body_n wherein_o it_o live_v be_v mortal_a 8_o do_v it_o not_o stand_v to_o very_o good_a sense_n that_o be_v both_o conceive_v into_o life_n into_o the_o womb_n together_o and_o both_o bear_v together_o into_o the_o world_n and_o both_o live_n together_o upon_o the_o earth_n their_o appoint_a time_n and_o be_v both_o pollute_a together_o with_o sin_n that_o they_o shall_v also_o both_o die_v together_o and_o turn_v to_o their_o dust_n or_o nonbeing_a again_o until_o the_o general_a bodily_a resurrection_n of_o all_o mankind_n that_o be_v dead_a asleep_a in_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n when_o time_n be_v no_o more_o either_o unto_o eternal_a glory_n or_o everlasting_a shame_n 9_o again_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 46._o chap._n of_o genesis_n all_o the_o soul_n that_o come_v with_o jacob_n into_o egypt_n which_o come_v out_o of_o his_o loin_n beside_o jacob_n wife_n where_o in_o the_o whole_a threescore_o and_o six_o soul_n 10_o in_o the_o ten_o of_o deuteronomy_n and_o the_o last_o verse_n it_o be_v write_v thy_o father_n go_v down_o into_o egypt_n with_o seventy_o person_n here_o you_o see_v the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a for_o prove_v the_o soul_n proceed_v out_o of_o the_o loin_n of_o man_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n 11_o also_o you_o see_v that_o a_o man_n in_o scripture_n be_v call_v soul_n and_o sometime_o be_v call_v body_n or_o soul_n body_n and_o spirit_n and_o yet_o you_o know_v he_o be_v but_o one_o live_a essence_n or_o substance_n 12_o if_o all_o soul_n and_o body_n since_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n by_o natural_a generation_n proceed_v from_o the_o loin_n of_o one_o another_o as_o it_o be_v prove_v clear_o by_o spiritual_a sense_n reason_n and_o scripture_n how_o can_v poor_a vain_a perish_a dust_n imagine_v that_o his_o sinful_a soul_n be_v immortal_a and_o can_v die_v 13_o be_v it_o not_o natural_a for_o a_o immortal_a spirit_n to_o be_v unite_v only_o unto_o a_o immortal_a body_n and_o be_v it_o not_o natural_a for_o a_o mortal_a soul_n to_o be_v unite_v only_o unto_o a_o mortal_a body_n 14_o be_v it_o not_o against_o all_o sober_a sense_n or_o reason_n that_o the_o body_n of_o man_n can_v be_v subject_a to_o any_o kind_n of_o disease_n or_o distemper_n in_o the_o least_o if_o his_o soul_n be_v immortal_a and_o can_v not_o die_v 15_o be_v it_o not_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o immortality_n immediate_o to_o swallow_v up_o all_o into_o life_n or_o to_o transmute_v that_o body_n wherein_o it_o sive_v from_o all_o manner_n of_o corruption_n into_o his_o own_o uncorrupted_a glory_n 16_o be_v it_o not_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sinful_a soul_n to_o become_v subject_a to_o die_v through_o the_o defilement_n of_o its_o first_o create_v purity_n 17_o be_v there_o any_o undefiled_a soul_n now_o live_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v not_o immortality_n all_o spotless_a purity_n as_o aforesaid_a how_o then_o think_v thou_o it_o possible_a that_o the_o sinful_a soul_n of_o man_n be_v immortal_a already_o and_o can_v die_v 18_o it_o be_v write_v the_o soul_n that_o sin_n shall_v die_v also_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o day_n thou_o eat_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n i_o confess_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o any_o kind_n of_o death_n until_o they_o be_v both_o defile_v with_o the_o sinful_a nature_n of_o the_o angelical_a serpent_n 19_o but_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o have_v eat_v of_o that_o curse_a serpentine_a tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n their_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v free_a from_o all_o their_o former_a pure_a life_n 20_o in_o the_o room_n thereof_o be_v subject_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o impute_a death_n whatsoever_o and_o do_v not_o know_v but_o that_o they_o be_v both_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o divine_a presence_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n 21_o until_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n himself_o gracious_o promise_v they_o to_o become_v flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n of_o the_o virgin_n seed_n to_o redeem_v their_o sinful_a soul_n and_o body_n again_o out_o of_o all_o kind_n of_o death_n into_o a_o unchangeable_a immortal_a glory_n at_o his_o personal_a appear_v with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n 22_o again_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v in_o divers_a place_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n that_o sin_n shall_v die_v and_o that_o the_o pure_a soul_n of_o christ_n himself_o be_v pour_v forth_o unto_o death_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v leave_v in_o grave_n nor_o that_o his_o bless_a body_n shall_v see_v corruption_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v that_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v but_o dust_n and_o to_o dust_n they_o shall_v re_fw-mi urn_n again_o and_o yet_o thou_o contrary_a to_o all_o prophetical_a or_o apostolical_a scripture_n and_o against_o all_o sober_a sense_n or_o reason_n in_o its_o right_a mind_n ignorant_o or_o impudent_o affirm_v that_o the_o sinful_a soul_n of_o man_n be_v already_o immortal_a and_o can_v die_v or_o be_v put_v to_o death_n 23_o again_o from_o this_o thy_o nonsensical_a imagination_n do_v thou_o not_o call_v all_o the_o scripture_n all_o lie_n and_o the_o eternal_a majesty_n from_o whence_o they_o proceed_v a_o liar_n to_o his_o face_n and_o do_v thou_o not_o call_v all_o sober_a sense_n and_o reason_n a_o mere_a lie_n also_o 24_o i_o know_v it_o be_v a_o common_a thing_n for_o man_n to_o say_v they_o have_v in_o they_o a_o good_a spirit_n and_o a_o bad_a spirit_n it_o be_v confess_v that_o every_o man_n in_o his_o fall_a spirit_n have_v remain_v a_o little_a light_n or_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o he_o 25_o yet_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o though_o he_o have_v a_o twofold_a motion_n in_o he_o to_o justify_v all_o the_o righteous_a proceeding_n of_o the_o creator_n in_o his_o conscience_n at_o the_o last_o day_n yet_o he_o have_v but_o one_o spirit_n or_o soul_n in_o he_o 26_o indeed_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o spirit_n lu_v against_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o flesh_n lu_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o these_o two_o be_v contrary_a that_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o spirit_n in_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v a_o divine_a light_n of_o life_n receive_v into_o the_o dark_a understanding_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o word_n speak_v from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o a_o glorify_a christ_n but_o not_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 27_o and_o that_o which_o he_o call_v the_o flesh_n be_v man_n own_a spirit_n which_o consist_v of_o nothing_o but_o confuse_a lie_v imagination_n or_o curse_a carnal_a reason_n against_o that_o heavenly_a light_n
eternity_n a_o distinct_a glory_n be_v it_o not_o of_o necessity_n that_o this_o everliving_a be_v shall_v be_v a_o glorious_a something_o 16_o be_v it_o not_o both_o lawful_a and_o expedient_a also_o for_o a_o man_n according_a to_o sobriety_n to_o declare_v unto_o his_o spiritual_a and_o natural_a brethren_n what_o this_o glorious_a god_n be_v and_o be_v that_o man_n be_v send_v forth_o by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n for_o that_o very_a end_n or_o purpose_n 17_o do_v not_o all_o man_n which_o confess_v a_o creator_n conclude_v positive_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o no_o more_o 18_o if_o this_o one_o god_n be_v a_o infinite_a distinct_a spiritual_a substance_n before_o any_o create_v be_v appear_v to_o themselves_o be_v it_o not_o of_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n that_o he_o shall_v abide_v in_o his_o own_o divine_a centre_n and_o so_o continue_v a_o distinct_a glorious_a be_v to_o all_o eternity_n for_o a_o everlasting_a distinction_n between_o the_o unchangeable_a creator_n and_o the_o changeable_a creature_n 19_o do_v not_o all_o man_n which_o acknowledge_v this_o distinct_a glorious_a be_v conclude_v he_o to_o be_v a_o infinite_a eternal_a unchangeable_a spirit_n and_o do_v they_o not_o conclude_v this_o incomprehensible_a spirit_n to_o be_v a_o eternal_a godhead_n be_v in_o itself_o and_o so_o of_o necessity_n must_v he_o not_o be_v a_o distinct_a glorious_a be_v from_o all_o thing_n and_o place_n 20_o if_o there_o be_v a_o creator_n and_o if_o this_o glorious_a creator_n be_v a_o infinite_a distinct_a something_o too_o transcendent_o divine_a to_o be_v essential_o unite_v unto_o heaven_n earth_n angel_n or_o man_n which_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o conceit_a notionalist_n or_o literal_a hypocrite_n be_v not_o those_o man_n as_o yet_o utter_o ignorant_a of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n which_o imagine_v the_o creator_n to_o be_v a_o infinite_a formless_a spirit_n essential_o unite_v unto_o the_o whole_a creation_n utter_o hate_v that_o god_n that_o be_v a_o distinct_a glorious_a be_v to_o himself_o 21_o again_o if_o the_o eternal_a be_v be_v a_o infinite_a spirit_n can_v that_o glorious_a spirit_n be_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o without_o it_o be_v endue_v with_o variety_n of_o divine_a qualification_n 22_o be_v not_o that_o infinite_a spirit_n and_o its_o glorious_a property_n but_o only_o one_o essence_n or_o godhead_n substance_n 23_o be_v not_o every_o virtue_n in_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n infinite_a 24_o be_v that_o eternal_a spirit_n and_o its_o heavenly_a virtue_n any_o thing_n else_o but_o immortal_a crown_n of_o bright_a burn_a glory_n 25_o can_v this_o infinite_a spiritual_a glory_n be_v sensible_a of_o its_o divine_a excellency_n or_o be_v a_o perfect_a blessedness_n except_o he_o have_v a_o distinct_a body_n suitable_a unto_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n to_o enjoy_v his_o divine_a pleasure_n to_o himself_o and_o at_o his_o pleasure_n to_o distribute_v by_o measure_n into_o the_o elect_a spirit_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n the_o in-shining_a glimpse_n of_o this_o incomprehensible_a glory_n 26_o though_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n be_v that_o invisible_a god_n that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o its_o almighty_a word_n have_v create_v all_o thing_n either_o for_o a_o time_n or_o for_o eternity_n into_o that_o glorious_a order_n they_o now_o appear_v to_o be_v yet_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o without_o a_o body_n face_n or_o tongue_n his_o glorious_a spirit_n can_v not_o possible_o have_v speak_v any_o distinct_a word_n at_o all_o no_o more_o than_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v speak_v distinct_a word_n without_o a_o body_n face_n or_o tongue_n of_o their_o own_o 27_o though_o all_o power_n wisdom_n and_o glory_n proceed_v only_o from_o a_o invisible_a eternal_a spirit_n yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o it_o can_v be_v a_o perfect_a glory_n except_o it_o be_v clothe_v with_o a_o majestical_a person_n as_o a_o visible_a ornament_n for_o man_n and_o angel_n to_o behold_v face_n to_o face_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n no_o more_o than_o the_o invisible_a spirit_n of_o earthly_a monarch_n can_v be_v complete_a without_o natural_a body_n or_o person_n for_o their_o subject_n behold_v they_o face_n to_o face_n 28_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v true_o spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o though_o there_o be_v nothing_o create_v by_o any_o bodily_a labour_n or_o painful_a study_n of_o the_o glorious_a creator_n 29_o yet_o without_o a_o distinct_a heavenly_a body_n there_o be_v nothing_o make_v that_o be_v make_v neither_o possible_o can_v be_v what_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v imagine_v to_o the_o contrary_n 30_o so_o much_o at_o present_a concern_v that_o one_o personal_a majesty_n or_o incomprehensible_a be_v of_o all_o being_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o change_v or_o to_o be_v change_v at_o his_o divine_a pleasure_n 31_o o_o blessed_a only_o be_v all_o you_o that_o have_v the_o faith_n of_o his_o own_o glorious_a personal_a god_n abide_v in_o you_o chap._n xxvii_o 1_o a_o more_o full_a discourse_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n 2._o no_o true_a messenger_n or_o witness_n without_o a_o voice_n from_o god_n to_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o ear_n 3_o the_o three_o commission_n agree_v all_o in_o truth_n 4_o differ_v only_o in_o point_n of_o worship_n 5_o there_o be_v not_o nor_o can_v there_o be_v assurance_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n but_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o commission_n 5_o god_n ow_v no_o worship_n in_o this_o commission_n but_o what_o be_v spiritual_a 6_o the_o difference_n between_o true_a and_o false_a commissioner_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v treat_v again_o concern_v the_o witness_n according_a to_o former_a intention_n you_o may_v remember_v where_o i_o cease_v i_o challenge_v the_o whole_a world_n whether_o since_o the_o primitive_a time_n any_o man_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o bear_v record_n unto_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n in_o glory_n to_o be_v the_o only_a wise_a god_n creator_n redeemer_n and_o everlasting_a father_n appear_v as_o the_o two_o revelation-witness_n 2_o again_o until_o the_o roman_a bishop_n persecute_v tyranny_n be_v expire_v in_o this_o land_n you_o may_v know_v the_o two_o revelation-witness_n or_o prophet_n never_o appear_v 3_o for_o according_a unto_o scripture_n order_n you_o that_o be_v of_o a_o spiritual_a comprehension_n may_v know_v that_o we_o be_v those_o two_o commissionated_a witness_n or_o prophet_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n because_o as_o beforesaid_a 4_o according_a to_o the_o pprophecy_n by_o saint_n john_n we_o exact_o appear_v when_o the_o roman_a bishop_n time_n be_v expire_v of_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o holy_a city_n or_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o this_o land_n 5_o some_o man_n may_v object_v and_o say_v why_o be_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o two_o in_o number_n and_o the_o former_a witness_n of_o so_o great_a a_o number_n unto_o this_o objection_n from_o the_o lord_n i_o answer_v by_o way_n of_o quere_z do_v not_o the_o glorious_a wisdom_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n most_o of_o all_o appear_v in_o the_o small_a number_n of_o thing_n for_o the_o act_n of_o a_o wonderful_a work_n 6_o be_v it_o not_o most_o advantageous_a unto_o the_o creator_n glory_n to_o prevent_v man_n or_o angel_n from_o know_v his_o witness_n or_o their_o number_n either_o by_o miracle_n or_o without_o miracle_n until_o his_o pleasure_n be_v to_o reveal_v they_o 7_o you_o know_v that_o god_n worship_n former_o be_v not_o only_o invisible_a but_o visible_a also_o and_o to_o continue_v for_o a_o long_a season_n therefore_o there_o require_v a_o great_a number_n of_o spiritual_a speaker_n unto_o the_o elect_a 8_o but_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v now_o only_o spiritual_a or_o invisible_a thou_o may_v know_v that_o a_o witness_n or_o two_o be_v sufficient_a the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v near_o at_o hand_n to_o proclaim_v his_o glorious_a come_n by_o speak_v or_o write_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n 8_o again_o be_v not_o a_o witness_n or_o two_o sufficient_a to_o discover_v the_o vanity_n of_o all_o vain_a glorious_a fleshly_a formality_n among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n see_v the_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n to_o make_v a_o eternal_a separation_n between_o the_o bless_a israelite_n and_o the_o curse_a canaanites_n 9_o do_v not_o these_o three_o witness_n in_o earth_n only_o agree_v in_o one_o divine_a body_n of_o all_o truth_n in_o this_o respect_n because_o they_o receive_v their_o commission_n by_o voice_n of_o word_n to_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o visible_a as_o well_o as_o invisible_a ear_n through_o the_o glorious_a mouth_n of_o a_o personal_a majesty_n 10_o wherefore_o can_v any_o man_n upon_o this_o earth_n that_o count_v himself_o or_o be_v account_v by_o other_o to_o be_v a_o true_a prophet_n apostle_n minister_n preacher_n teacher_n bishop_n shepherd_z priest_n ambassador_n or_o witness_v from_o
the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n without_o a_o voice_n of_o distinct_a word_n to_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o ear_n from_o the_o everliving_a god_n 11_o or_o can_v he_o possess_v any_o true_a joy_n or_o peace_n of_o conscience_n in_o his_o prophetical_a declaration_n without_o such_o a_o immediate_a commission_n from_o the_o true_a god_n as_o beforesaid_a 12_o again_o though_o spirit_n blood_n and_o water_n by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n sweet_o agree_v within_o the_o body_n of_o a_o healthful_a man_n yet_o you_o know_v that_o they_o be_v of_o contrary_a nature_n to_o one_o another_o 13_o for_o the_o soul_n or_o spirit_n of_o man_n be_v a_o absolute_a mortal_a fire_n within_o the_o blood_n and_o the_o water_n which_o by_o virtue_n of_o its_o fiery_a nature_n qualifi_v the_o blood_n and_o the_o water_n according_a to_o their_o capacity_n 14_o through_o which_o they_o be_v so_o sweet_o compose_v that_o unanimous_o they_o give_v natural_a life_n and_o strength_n through_o the_o whole_a man_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o one_o can_v live_v without_o the_o other_o though_o they_o be_v of_o contrary_a nature_n 15_o thus_o through_o the_o secret_a decree_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n there_o be_v a_o marvellous_a trinitary_a mystery_n within_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o man_n 16_o but_o very_a few_o man_n understand_v it_o for_o want_n of_o the_o prophetical_a spirit_n of_o david_n in_o they_o who_o cry_v out_o with_o exceed_a admiration_n of_o the_o creator_n wisdom_n say_v i_o be_o fearful_o and_o wonderful_o make_v 17_o so_o likewise_o you_o may_v know_v it_o be_v with_o these_o three_o commissionated_a witness_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n in_o earth_n 18_o for_o though_o all_o three_o proceed_v from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o all_o bear_v record_n unto_o only_a one_o distinct_a personal_a god-man_n glorify_v yet_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o declaration_n concern_v the_o worship_v of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n they_o differ_v and_o be_v as_o contrary_a as_o fire_n blood_n and_o water_n which_o be_v without_o the_o body_n of_o man_n 19_o but_o in_o the_o spirituality_n of_o their_o administration_n concern_v invisible_a worship_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n they_o harmonious_o agree_v as_o one_o soul_n like_v unto_o spirit_n blood_n and_o water_n within_o man_n body_n as_o aforesaid_a 20_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v ask_v why_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n have_v put_v such_o a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o administration_n of_o his_o three_o witness_n in_o earth_n to_o this_o from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n i_o answer_v by_o way_n of_o quere_z be_v it_o not_o to_o blind_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o prudent_a man_n of_o this_o world_n that_o from_o their_o strength_n of_o reason_n in_o scripture_n record_n they_o may_v war_v against_o the_o pure_a light_n of_o life_n within_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o god_n of_o all_o save_a truth_n 21_o that_o they_o may_v remain_v in_o their_o rational_a darkness_n of_o unbelief_n wherein_o they_o be_v bear_v and_o so_o everlasting_o perish_v for_o want_n of_o that_o ●ew_a and_o true_a birth_n of_o the_o fiery_a glorious_a spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 22_o be_v it_o not_o also_o that_o god_n alone_o may_v receive_v all_o the_o honour_n power_n praise_n and_o glory_n from_o his_o redeem_a one_o in_o the_o reveal_n his_o true_a witness_n or_o prophet_n unto_o they_o by_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n through_o which_o they_o attain_v to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o very_a true_a god_n and_o the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o eternity_n declare_v by_o his_o own_o choose_a messenger_n 23_o and_o so_o be_v make_v to_o receive_v those_o divine_a truth_n in_o the_o purity_n of_o they_o by_o love_v of_o they_o above_o the_o gain_n or_o glory_n of_o this_o conceit_a perish_a world_n 24_o moreover_o do_v they_o not_o thereby_o enjoy_v a_o invisible_a seal_n of_o a_o assurance_n of_o the_o eternal_a immortality_n of_o their_o person_n at_o the_o visible_a appear_v of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 25_o that_o most_o infinite_a glorious_a god_n with_o all_o his_o mighty_a angel_n moses_n and_o elias_n at_o that_o dreadful_a day_n when_o all_o time_n shall_v vanish_v immediate_o and_o eternity_n only_o seize_v upon_o all_o mankind_n in_o their_o several_a person_n 26_o again_o if_o water_n blood_n and_o fire_n without_o the_o body_n of_o man_n be_v mix_v together_o be_v of_o contrary_a condition_n or_o nature_n you_o know_v they_o cease_v not_o contend_v until_o they_o have_v conquer_v one_o another_o 27_o also_o you_o know_v blood_n be_v too_o strong_a for_o water_n and_o fire_n too_o powerful_a for_o blood_n so_o likewise_o you_o may_v know_v it_o be_v with_o the_o three_o commissionated_a witness_n of_o god_n in_o earth_n moses_n the_o apostle_n and_o two_o last_o witness_n 28_o though_o they_o unanimous_o agree_v in_o bear_v record_n unto_o only_a one_o distinct_a personal_a god_n of_o all_o save_a truth_n as_o spirit_n water_n and_o blood_n sweet_o accord_v within_o the_o healthful_a body_n of_o a_o mortal_a man_n as_o aforesaid_a 29_o yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o in_o their_o visible_a worship_n they_o be_v at_o warfare_n with_o each_o other_o until_o they_o have_v obtain_v victory_n one_o over_o another_o 30_o that_o the_o present_a immediate_a spiritual_a wisdom_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n may_v bear_v rule_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o choose_a jewel_n of_o immortal_a crown_n and_o not_o that_o which_o be_v past_a 31_o wherefore_o when_o that_o gospel_n administration_n of_o blood_n appear_v you_o know_v that_o the_o apostolical_a commissioner_n thereof_o do_v with_o all_o their_o power_n preach_v against_o all_o mosaical_a observation_n of_o jewish_a circumcision_n new_a moon_n or_o abstinence_n from_o meat_n drink_v or_o any_o kind_n of_o sabbattical_a ceremony_n whatsoever_o to_o be_v vain_a and_o of_o none_o effect_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n 32_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v enlighten_v from_o on_o high_a may_v see_v that_o that_o spiritual_a wine_n of_o the_o everlasting_a gospel_n in_o the_o choose_a of_o god_n transmute_v all_o watery_a ceremony_n into_o its_o own_o spiritual_a substance_n even_o as_o water_v be_v mingle_v with_o blood_n be_v convert_v into_o its_o own_o nature_n 33_o moreover_o since_o the_o appear_a of_o the_o two_o last_o witness_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n you_o may_v know_v that_o all_o apostolical_a ordinance_n imitate_v by_o man_n call_v minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v counterfeit_a apostle_n which_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o preach_v pray_o baptise_v with_o water_n break_v bread_n lay_v on_o hand_n or_o any_o such_o like_a without_o a_o commission_n from_o on_o high_a 34_o whether_o for_o silver_n or_o honour_n or_o a_o name_n among_o man_n under_o pretence_n of_o conscience_n unto_o a_o god_n which_o they_o true_o understand_v not_o nor_o desire_v to_o know_v 35_o from_o the_o true_a god_n i_o say_v again_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o these_o idol_n shepherd_n and_o their_o imaginary_a formality_n be_v now_o become_v vain_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o heavenly_a breathe_n or_o income_n of_o the_o glorious_a spirit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n god-man_n glorify_v 36_o thus_o in_o what_o soul_n soever_o this_o divine_a worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n powerful_o appear_v it_o immediate_o transmute_v all_o apostolical_a formality_n into_o invisible_a spirituality_n of_o glorious_a joy_n 37_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o heavenly_a intercourse_n between_o the_o divine_a spirit_n and_o the_o poor_a soul_n that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o his_o heavenly_a voice_n or_o still_o motion_n 38_o again_o if_o divers_a man_n appear_v as_o witness_n or_o prophet_n immediate_o send_v forth_o by_o a_o powerful_a commission_n from_o the_o everliving_a god_n be_v there_o not_o certain_a divine_a seal_n to_o distinguish_v between_o those_o embaslador_n which_o be_v infallible_a and_o they_o that_o be_v but_o fallible_a 39_o my_o elect_a brethren_n be_v it_o not_o the_o property_n of_o a_o commissionated_a witness_n of_o christ_n jesus_n at_o the_o first_o appearance_n of_o god_n unto_o he_o to_o desire_v the_o most_o high_a that_o he_o will_v pass_v he_o by_o and_o make_v choice_n of_o any_o other_o to_o be_v his_o ambassador_n unto_o his_o people_n 40_o furthermore_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o spiritual_a declaration_n unto_o the_o most_o wise_a natural_a man_n do_v he_o not_o appear_v not_o only_o seem_o quite_o contrary_n unto_o the_o lord_n former_a witness_n but_o also_o as_o the_o most_o blasphemous_a simple_a base_a fellow_n that_o ever_o appear_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n 41_o but_o of_o the_o contrary_a for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o man_n that_o be_v deceive_v be_v there_o not_o a_o strong_a desire_n in_o their_o fleshly_a spirit_n
to_o be_v a_o spiritual_a witness_n of_o the_o lord_n 42_o and_o upon_o that_o account_n will_v not_o the_o least_o appearance_n within_o they_o or_o without_o they_o stir_v up_o their_o spirit_n to_o go_v or_o run_v before_o they_o be_v send_v 43_o moreover_o for_o want_v of_o a_o true_a commission_n by_o voice_n of_o word_n from_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n do_v they_o not_o declare_v marvellous_a natural_a thing_n that_o shall_v sudden_o come_v to_o pass_v or_o spiritual_a voice_n of_o power_n within_o they_o with_o many_o lie_a sign_n and_o wonder_n suitable_a unto_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n 44_o through_o which_o the_o most_o wise_a rational_a man_n be_v not_o only_a out-witted_n by_o they_o but_o subject_a to_o become_v one_o with_o they_o 45_o furthermore_n for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a declaration_n to_o witness_v in_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o people_n of_o pure_a light_n language_n and_o life_n that_o they_o be_v from_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n do_v they_o not_o deceive_v their_o own_o tosticatd_v spirit_n by_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o act_v over_o anew_o the_o former_a action_n of_o the_o true_a prophet_n or_o witness_n or_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n 46_o do_v not_o this_o demonstrate_v those_o to_o be_v the_o commissionated_a witness_n of_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n that_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o divine_a gift_n to_o write_v a_o volume_n as_o large_a as_o the_o bible_n and_o as_o pure_a a_o language_n as_o that_o be_v with_o as_o much_o variety_n of_o matter_n without_o look_v in_o any_o writing_n whatsoever_o or_o have_v any_o real_a contradiction_n in_o it_o 47_o again_o if_o man_n be_v endue_v with_o a_o divine_a gift_n to_o remonstrate_v the_o real_a ground_n of_o the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o eternal_a glory_n and_o shame_n appoint_v for_o two_o world_n of_o people_n when_o time_n be_v no_o more_o be_v not_o this_o a_o clear_a manifestation_n unto_o the_o elect_a israelite_n that_o those_o man_n be_v the_o immediate_a witness_n or_o prophet_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n 48_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v prophet_n high_a priest_n or_o king_n of_o israel_n by_o a_o immediate_a power_n from_o the_o eternal_a jehovah_n and_o yet_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o eternity_n 49_o be_v not_o this_o a_o clear_a manifestation_n unto_o all_o that_o have_v any_o divine_a light_n in_o they_o that_o such_o man_n be_v but_o spiritual_a counterfeit_n 50_o if_o man_n by_o a_o divine_a gift_n unto_o those_o that_o have_v any_o light_n of_o life_n eternal_a shall_v make_v a_o undeniable_a discovery_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o spiritual_a counterfeit_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o that_o a_o real_a evidence_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o commission_n from_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n 51_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o man_n be_v so_o far_o from_o a_o true_a discovery_n of_o all_o spiritual_a counterfeit_n that_o they_o can_v show_v no_o sensible_a divine_a ground_n of_o their_o own_o commission_n from_o above_o be_v not_o that_o a_o clear_a manifestation_n unto_o all_o that_o be_v true_o enlighten_v that_o they_o be_v person_n under_o spiritual_a deceit_n 52_o if_o all_o sober_a man_n in_o general_a upon_o the_o perusal_n of_o this_o epistle_n shall_v in_o their_o conscience_n be_v convince_v that_o concern_v the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o eternity_n this_o be_v the_o clear_a discovery_n that_o ever_o their_o eye_n behold_v and_o yet_o but_o very_o few_o of_o they_o shall_v dare_v to_o own_o the_o penman_n thereof_o for_o fear_v of_o lose_v their_o present_a enjoyment_n of_o fleshly_a honour_n profit_n or_o pleasure_n among_o man_n 53_o be_v not_o this_o a_o clear_a demonstration_n unto_o the_o choose_a of_o god_n that_o this_o book_n be_v pen_v by_o the_o infallible_a witness_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n in_o the_o glorify_a person_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 54_o who_o man_n dare_v not_o own_v when_o he_o be_v on_o this_o earth_n for_o fear_v of_o be_v excommunicate_v of_o their_o vain_a glorious_a synagogue_n or_o because_o of_o many_o hard_a say_n unto_o man_n reason_n speak_v through_o his_o gracious_a and_o unerring_a mouth_n 55_o so_o much_o at_o present_a concern_v the_o choose_a witness_n prophet_n and_o apostle_n send_v forth_o by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n to_o bear_v record_n unto_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n the_o only_a wise_a god_n and_o alone_a everlasting_a father_n against_o all_o gainsayers_a that_o ever_o be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v from_o these_o scripture_n word_n and_o there_o be_v three_o which_o bear_v witness_n in_o the_o earth_n the_o spirit_n the_o water_n and_o the_o blood_n and_o these_o three_o agree_v in_o one_o 56_o crown_n of_o eternal_a glory_n be_v prepare_v for_o those_o man_n and_o woman_n which_o be_v not_o only_o preserve_v from_o despise_v thing_n that_o seem_v strange_a unto_o they_o but_o be_v also_o make_v with_o patience_n to_o wait_v upon_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o his_o discovery_n of_o they_o chap._n xxviii_o 1_o no_o reason_n in_o angel_n or_o man_n can_v be_v satisfy_v in_o itself_o without_o revelation_n from_o the_o creator_n 2_o god_n create_v reason_n 3_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o of_o his_o own_o nature_n 4_o infiniteness_n be_v to_o create_v person_n and_o thing_n differ_v from_o his_o own_o nature_n 5_o though_o all_o creature_n wer●_n make_v by_o god_n yet_o they_o come_v not_o out_o of_o he_o but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n 6_o no_o creature_n spiritual_a or_o natural_a can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n but_o man_n only_o 7_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o reason_n to_o promise_v obedience_n to_o god_n by_o his_o prophet_n but_o perform_v none_o 8_o why_o the_o angel_n be_v call_v mighty_a again_o because_o of_o the_o endlesness_n of_o that_o serpentine_a reason_n in_o man_n continual_o war_a against_o the_o innocent_a dove_n of_o plain_a truth_n proceed_v from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o a_o glorify_a christ_n 2_o therefore_o i_o shall_v write_v again_o concern_v the_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o nature_n of_o angelical_a reason_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o divine_a satisfaction_n in_o itself_o utter_o unknown_a to_o man_n or_o angel_n until_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n to_o impart_v the_o inshining_a glimpse_n thereof_o into_o their_o shallow_a comprehension_n 3_o though_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o mighty_a angel_n be_v pure_a reason_n yet_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_o quick_a may_v know_v that_o their_o undefiled_a reason_n will_v immediate_o become_v all_o rebellious_a imagination_n against_o the_o creator_n glory_n if_o it_o be_v not_o continual_o supply_v with_o inspiration_n from_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n 4_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o most_o pierce_a reason_n that_o be_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o mere_a desire_n 5_o where_o any_o desire_n abide_v be_v there_o not_o a_o want_n of_o something_o desire_v and_o where_o any_o thing_n be_v want_v can_v that_o spirit_n be_v full_o satisfy_v in_o itself_o 6_o again_o see_v the_o pure_a spirit_n of_o the_o mighty_a angel_n be_v but_o rational_a and_o the_o most_o excellent_a reason_n that_o be_v but_o mere_a desire_n and_o desire_v a_o want_n of_o inward_a satisfaction_n and_o where_o such_o satisfaction_n be_v want_v in_o itself_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a peace_n enjoy_v or_o continuance_n one_o moment_n in_o its_o present_a purity_n 7_o what_o spiritual_a power_n be_v there_o in_o the_o most_o pierce_a reason_n that_o can_v be_v 8_o be_v it_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o a_o mere_a desire_n that_o it_o may_v be_v partaker_n with_o the_o glorious_a purity_n of_o that_o spirit_n that_o give_v its_o sensible_a be_v 9_o have_v it_o any_o power_n at_o all_o to_o desire_v after_o wisdom_n love_n or_o any_o kind_n of_o divine_a excellency_n in_o the_o least_o from_o its_o own_o rational_a nature_n if_o this_o be_v truth_n which_o no_o spiritual_a or_o sober_a rational_a man_n can_v deny_v be_v not_o those_o man_n under_o deep_a darkness_n which_o say_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o god_n himself_o be_v pure_a reason_n only_o 10_o if_o the_o most_o pure_a reason_n in_o its_o own_o nature_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o unsatisfactory_a desire_n be_v it_o possible_a think_v you_o that_o spirit_n shall_v have_v one_o thought_n or_o motion_n of_o reason_n inherent_a in_o his_o nature_n who_o divine_a virtue_n be_v all_o transcendent_a satisfaction_n in_o itself_o 11_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o can_v the_o divine_a majesty_n create_v a_o rational_a live_a spirit_n and_o yet_o have_v none_o of_o that_o life_n or_o rational_a nature_n live_v in_o himself_o 12_o you_o may_v remember_v i_o have_v write_v upon_o this_o point_n already_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o angel_n yet_o for_o a_o
sin_n may_v be_v all_o like_a god_n himself_o in_o the_o heaven_n also_o in_o their_o several_a divine_a measure_n at_o the_o personal_a appear_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n with_o all_o his_o holy_a angel_n 33_o be_v not_o this_o one_o end_n also_o why_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n that_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o world_n shall_v not_o only_o blind_v their_o own_o eye_n but_o also_o become_v that_o scarlet_a whore_n that_o sit_v upon_o many_o water_n make_v the_o nation_n continual_o drink_v with_o their_o spiritual_a witchcraft_n of_o trinitary_a merchandize_v lie_n that_o they_o may_v be_v just_o condemn_v in_o their_o own_o conscience_n in_o that_o day_n when_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v say_v unto_o they_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n i_o know_v you_o not_o or_o i_o send_v you_o not_o you_o preach_v in_o my_o name_n only_o for_o silver_n and_o honour_n among_o man_n and_o you_o persecute_v my_o prophet_n to_o the_o death_n because_o they_o discover_v your_o learned_a deceit_n unto_o my_o people_n from_o your_o own_o subtle_a imagination_n you_o make_v law_n to_o stop_v all_o man_n mouth_n as_o blasphemer_n heretic_n seducer_n deceiver_n of_o the_o people_n or_o disturber_n of_o the_o civil_a peace_n and_o such_o like_a that_o you_o only_o may_v usurp_v lordship_n over_o all_o man_n conscience_n person_n and_o estate_n that_o can_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o your_o idolatrous_a invention_n you_o lay_v snare_n to_o entrap_v all_o those_o that_o you_o suspect_v m●ght_v impede_fw-la your_o vain_a glorious_a decree_n you_o live_v in_o secret_a lust_n and_o pleasure_n upon_o the_o ruin_n of_o my_o innocent_a people_n and_o flatter_v the_o ignorant_a what_o pain_n you_o take_v in_o study_v after_o sparitual_a thing_n for_o their_o soul_n health_n you_o make_v use_v of_o my_o holy_a name_n only_o as_o a_o cloak_n to_o hide_v all_o your_o subtlety_n from_o the_o deceive_a people_n you_o blind_v their_o understanding_n with_o your_o sabbattical_a ceremony_n of_o long_a prayer_n and_o lift_v up_o your_o eye_n and_o hand_n towards_o heaven_n as_o if_o you_o have_v be_v purity_n itself_o notwithstanding_o your_o heart_n be_v full_a of_o covetousness_n and_o your_o fee_n swift_a to_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n you_o offer_v up_o your_o bloody_a fast_n and_o feast_n unto_o i_o for_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o acceptation_n of_o your_o do_n as_o if_o i_o be_v like_a unto_o yourselves_o to_o be_v persuade_v by_o goodly_a word_n to_o justify_v all_o your_o unrighteousness_n you_o pretend_v my_o glory_n in_o all_o your_o imaginary_a formality_n but_o it_o be_v your_o own_o honour_n principal_o you_o seek_v from_o the_o people_n and_o death_n unto_o you_o to_o loose_v it_o earthly_a riches_n honour_n beauty_n unsatiable_a pleasure_n long_a life_n and_o such_o like_a be_v your_o only_a joy_n you_o have_v have_v this_o your_o desire_a paradise_n already_o and_o my_o poor_a people_n have_v suffer_v their_o hell_n in_o your_o heaven_n and_o now_o must_v you_o suffer_v your_o eternal_a pain_n and_o shame_n and_o they_o must_v possess_v everlasting_a joy_n and_o glory_n 34_o so_o much_o at_o present_a why_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v in_o some_o measure_n show_v what_o that_o image_n of_o god_n in_o the_o create_v of_o man_n do_v signify_v chap._n xxx_o 1_o how_o god_n make_v man_n in_o his_o own_o image_n or_o likeness_n 2_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n be_v of_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n of_o god_n 3_o not_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o angel_n 4_o of_o the_o create_a virtue_n in_o adam_n soul_n 5_o adam_n do_v not_o know_v of_o his_o power_n to_o stand_v or_o fall_v 6_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n which_o adam_n have_v receive_v from_o god_n dye_v the_o scripture_n declare_v what_o condition_n man_n be_v form_v in_o in_o these_o word_n thus_o god_n create_v the_o man_n in_o his_o image_n in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n create_v he_o he_o 2_o after_o the_o man_n be_v complete_o make_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o his_o creator_n the_o scripture_n tell_v you_o then_o what_o substance_n he_o be_v create_v of_o in_o those_o word_n the_o lord_n god_n also_o make_v the_o man_n of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o breathe_v into_o his_o nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n and_o the_o man_n be_v aliving_a soul_n 3_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v in_o the_o create_v of_o man_n that_o the_o lord_n god_n speak_v the_o word_n only_o into_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o immediate_o the_o virtue_n of_o that_o word_n bring_v forth_o a_o live_a man_n of_o pure_a flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n like_v unto_o god_n himself_o as_o near_o as_o possible_o can_v be_v 4_o it_o be_v not_o the_o visibility_n of_o their_o person_n that_o differ_v in_o the_o least_o but_o the_o glory_n of_o they_o only_o 5_o the_o one_o be_v a_o infinite_a spiritual_a body_n in_o all_o part_n perfect_o holy_a and_o the_o other_o be_v a_o finite_a natural_a body_n of_o perfect_a innocency_n resemble_v that_o divine_a form_n as_o aforesaid_a 6_o you_o know_v i_o have_v abundant_o show_v the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o least_o motion_n of_o reason_n to_o be_v inherent_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n therefore_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o understand_v though_o adam_n body_n be_v make_v of_o dust_n and_o appoint_v for_o generation_n be_v but_o natural_a yet_o his_o soul_n be_v not_o rational_a but_o supernatural_a or_o divine_a why_o because_o it_o be_v form_v according_a to_o the_o invisible_a glory_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n 7_o therefore_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o if_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n have_v be_v rational_a in_o its_o creation_n than_o it_o can_v not_o have_v be_v divine_a but_o of_o a_o angelical_a desire_a nature_n only_o of_o unsatisfaction_n in_o itself_o 8_o again_o you_o spiritual_a one_o may_v understand_v that_o that_o divine_a soul_n in_o adam_n which_o be_v create_v after_o the_o likeness_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n do_v consist_v of_o several_a heavenly_a property_n in_o its_o measure_n answerable_a unto_o those_o divine_a qualification_n in_o the_o glorious_a creator_n above_o all_o measure_n 9_o what_o be_v those_o create_a virtue_n in_o adam_n soul_n it_o be_v a_o invisible_a spiritual_a light_n and_o life_n call_v wisdom_n faith_n love_n righteousness_n meekness_n patience_n and_o such_o like_a 10_o though_o his_o soul_n can_v be_v nothing_o at_o all_o without_o its_o several_a property_n and_o though_o those_o qualification_n be_v all_o in_o a_o heavenly_a harmony_n yet_o this_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o joy_n of_o soul_n that_o adam_n do_v possess_v arise_v in_o he_o from_o one_o divine_a voice_n only_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v all_o satisfaction_n in_o himself_o with_o his_o present_a condition_n not_o have_v the_o least_o thought_n of_o any_o happiness_n beyond_o what_o he_o enjoy_v already_o 11_o as_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n be_v variety_n of_o infinite_a satisfaction_n in_o itself_o so_o likewise_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n be_v compose_v of_o the_o very_a same_o qualification_n be_v variety_n of_o heavenly_a satisfaction_n in_o itself_o also_o according_a to_o its_o measure_n 12_o if_o the_o nature_n of_o adam_n soul_n have_v be_v rational_a in_o his_o creation_n then_o through_o want_n of_o divine_a satisfaction_n in_o itself_o it_o will_v always_o have_v be_v desire_v after_o something_o that_o he_o want_v like_a unto_o the_o elect_a angel_n and_o we_o which_o have_v two_o contrary_a voice_n in_o one_o soul_n 13_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o create_a nature_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n can_v not_o possible_o have_v any_o reason_n in_o it_o why_o because_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o reason_n be_v serious_o to_o consider_v whether_o thing_n be_v good_a or_o right_n that_o be_v propound_v unto_o its_o understanding_n or_o no._n 14_o but_o of_o the_o contrary_a that_o spirit_n which_o without_o the_o least_o consideration_n perfect_o know_v the_o excellency_n of_o a_o thing_n as_o soon_o as_o ever_o it_o be_v present_v unto_o it_o as_o adam_n do_v must_v needs_o be_v divine_a as_o god_n be_v and_o so_o super-rational_a though_o clothe_v with_o pure_a nature_n only_o 15_o again_o though_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n through_o the_o divine_a purity_n of_o its_o nature_n be_v immortal_a and_o uncapable_a of_o the_o least_o motion_n of_o any_o kind_n of_o rebellion_n against_o the_o glorious_a spirit_n of_o its_o creator_n yet_o because_o his_o body_n be_v natural_a and_o have_v its_o beginning_n of_o dust_n and_o so_o be_v subject_a to_o change_v or_o to_o
twofold_a operation_n which_o be_v this_o when_o his_o wisdom_n see●h_v fit_a to_o reveal_v a_o divine_a secret_a to_o his_o elect_a than_o his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v all_o active_a and_o when_o he_o see_v fit_a to_o obscure_v it_o from_o they_o than_o his_o divine_a spirit_n be_v all_o passive_a 3_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o infinite_a power_n and_o wisdom_n you_o know_v that_o he_o can_v create_v light_a out_o of_o darkness_n and_o life_n out_o of_o death_n with_o a_o glorious_a advantage_n 4_o you_o know_v that_o if_o the_o glorious_a creator_n for_o trial_n of_o his_o creature_n shall_v leave_v the_o most_o experimental_a man_n that_o be_v to_o his_o own_o inspire_a light_n and_o suffer_v he_o to_o be_v tempt_v unto_o that_o evil_n of_o adultery_n or_o murder_n and_o overcome_v thereby_o he_o must_v of_o necessity_n loose_v that_o former_a joy_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o divine_a light_n or_o love_n of_o god_n in_o he_o 5_o and_o in_o the_o room_n thereof_o both_o see_v and_o feel_v nothing_o but_o spiritual_a darkness_n with_o a_o secret_a fear_n of_o eternal_a death_n 6_o until_o the_o light_n of_o life_n appear_v again_o with_o a_o new_a assurance_n of_o a_o glorious_a deliverance_n from_o that_o sinful_a darkness_n and_o fearful_a death_n as_o aforesaid_a 7_o true_o what_o ever_o man_n shall_v imagine_v to_o the_o contrary_a as_o sure_a as_o there_o be_v a_o god_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n both_o of_o eve_n and_o adam_n also_o when_o they_o be_v defile_v with_o unlawful_a lust_n one_o towards_o another_o by_o subtle_a temptation_n of_o that_o serpent_n council_n call_v the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n 8_o again_o though_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v a_o tree_n to_o be_v desire_v to_o make_v one_o wise_a yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o eve_n be_v not_o of_o a_o desire_a nature_n after_o wisdom_n in_o her_o creation_n because_o she_o be_v all_o divine_a satisfaction_n in_o herself_o 9_o therefore_o that_o desire_n of_o taste_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o a_o tree_n to_o make_v her_o wise_a as_o god_n to_o know_v both_o good_a and_o evil_n proceed_v only_o from_o the_o rational_a nature_n of_o the_o unsatisfy_a spirit_n of_o the_o angelical_a serpent_n 10_o for_o this_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o understand_v at_o that_o time_n eve_n be_v tempt_v to_o evil_a by_o the_o serpent_n she_o be_v whole_o leave_v to_o her_o own_o strength_n 11_o and_o it_o be_v the_o seem_a glory_n of_o his_o angelical_a language_n that_o overtop_v her_o present_a light_n and_o beget_v that_o desire_n in_o her_o understanding_n through_o which_o her_o soul_n be_v move_v with_o a_o powerful_a desire_n to_o make_v trial_n of_o his_o serpentine_a council_n and_o to_o taste_v of_o his_o spiritual_a meat_n so_o high_o exalt_v by_o he_o 12_o because_o to_o she_o receive_v new_a thought_n she_o have_v not_o hear_v so_o glorious_a a_o language_n before_o 13_o again_o the_o tree_n be_v pleasant_a for_o sight_n true_o before_o that_o glitter_a serpent_n appear_v eve_n want_v no_o satisfaction_n in_o behold_v the_o man_n adam_n 14_o but_o she_o look_v a_o little_a too_o long_o upon_o the_o comeliness_n of_o his_o form_n through_o his_o infuse_a witchcraft_n her_o soul_n be_v ravish_v with_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o angelical_a person_n 15_o again_o it_o be_v a_o tree_n who_o fruit_n be_v to_o be_v desire_v to_o make_v one_o wise_a as_o god_n to_o know_v both_o good_a and_o evil_n my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n the_o pretend_a meaning_n of_o the_o serpent_n in_o those_o word_n be_v this_o if_o she_o do_v but_o taste_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o tree_n it_o be_v so_o full_a of_o divine_a virtue_n that_o she_o shall_v not_o only_o be_v like_a unto_o god_n but_o she_o shall_v be_v as_o god_n to_o herself_o 16_o also_o to_o know_v all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v know_v whether_o good_a or_o evil_n within_o she_o own_o soul_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v his_o secret_a intent_n be_v this_o that_o when_o she_o have_v taste_v of_o that_o forbid_a fruit_n she_o shall_v with_o he_o both_o know_v and_o feel_v in_o she_o own_o spirit_n the_o difference_n between_o light_n and_o darkness_n life_n and_o death_n love_n and_o envy_n peace_n and_o war_n good_a and_o evil_n or_o god_n and_o devil_n 17_o since_o eve_n the_o natural_a mother_n of_o all_o mankind_n be_v overcome_v by_o lust_n through_o the_o sultilty_n of_o the_o serpent_n have_v not_o many_o a_o poor_a innocent_a virgin_n or_o virgin-wife_n be_v deceive_v in_o like_a manner_n through_o the_o comeliness_n of_o man_n person_n and_o their_o serpentine_a language_n by_o persuade_v they_o that_o they_o love_v they_o above_o their_o own_o life_n and_o of_o give_v they_o such_o content_n they_o know_v not_o of_o or_o if_o they_o deny_v they_o it_o will_v be_v their_o death_n 18_o moreover_o by_o tell_v they_o all_o man_n be_v but_o one_o man_n and_o all_o woman_n be_v but_o one_o woman_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v pure_a liberty_n to_o be_v free_a unto_o all_o and_o that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o great_a bondage_n which_o be_v unite_v to_o one_o only_a 19_o i_o say_v have_v not_o these_o and_o such_o like_a curse_a counsel_n occasion_v many_o a_o innocent_a soul_n to_o betray_v their_o virginity_n or_o virgin_n bed_n unto_o their_o perpetual_a sorrow_n and_o shame_n afterward_o 20_o truly_n my_o christian_a friend_n this_o be_v the_o virgin-wife_n eve_n very_a case_n though_o it_o may_v seem_v strange_a at_o the_o first_o unto_o many_o that_o shall_v read_v this_o epistle_n 21_o you_o know_v the_o scripture_n say_v that_o she_o see_v the_o tree_n to_o be_v good_a for_o meat_n and_o pleasant_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o a_o tree_n to_o be_v desire_v to_o make_v one_o wise_a take_v of_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o and_o do_v eat_v that_o be_v when_o the_o innocent_a soul_n of_o eve_n be_v overpowr_v with_o the_o serpent_n subtle_a language_n as_o before_o say_v her_o spirit_n do_v consent_n unto_o he_o to_o come_v in_o unto_o she_o and_o take_v full_a possession_n of_o she_o to_o be_v her_o god_n and_o guide_n instead_o of_o her_o creator_n 22_o true_o in_o this_o case_n the_o virgin_n eve_n condition_n may_v fit_o be_v compare_v unto_o the_o virgin_n mary_n 23_o you_o know_v after_o the_o angel_n have_v tell_v she_o that_o without_o know_v of_o man_n she_o shall_v be_v with_o child_n through_o the_o power_n of_o the_o most_o high_a overshadow_v of_o she_o how_o easy_o be_v she_o entreat_v not_o only_o to_o have_v it_o so_o but_o also_o how_o exceed_o do_v her_o soul_n rejoice_v with_o the_o very_a tiding_n thereof_o 24_o if_o man_n look_v with_o a_o spiritual_a eye_n between_o their_o angelical_a salutation_n they_o may_v see_v more_o seem_a glorious_a enjoyment_n in_o the_o unclean_a angel_n greeting_n of_o eve_n then_o in_o the_o holy_a angel_n salute_v of_o mary_n 25_o though_o man_n or_o angel_n shall_v gainsay_v it_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n itself_o i_o shall_v declare_v the_o very_a sense_n of_o this_o secret_a in_o plainess_n of_o speech_n which_o be_v this_o 26_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o eve_n soul_n through_o the_o permissive_a power_n of_o god_n be_v overcome_v to_o consent_v to_o the_o serpent_n curse_a counsel_n his_o angelical_a person_n enter_v into_o her_o womb_n through_o her_o secret_a part_n 27_o and_o be_v unite_v to_o her_o soul_n and_o body_n his_o serpentine_a nature_n dissolve_v itself_o into_o her_o pure_a seed_n and_o defile_v she_o throughout_o and_o so_o become_v essential_o one_o with_o she_o through_o which_o natural_o she_o conceive_v a_o serpent_n dragon_n devil_n into_o a_o man-child_n of_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n and_o bring_v forth_o her_o first_o beget_v son_n of_o the_o devil_n yea_o the_o very_a dragon_n serpent_n devil_n himself_o and_o call_v his_o name_n according_a to_o his_o nature_n cain_n or_o curse_a though_o ignorant_o she_o say_v she_o have_v receive_v a_o man_n from_o the_o lord_n 28_o so_o likewise_o of_o the_o contrary_a the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin-wife_n mary_n be_v honour_v with_o the_o only_a wise_a angelical_a god_n himself_o 29_o through_o which_o her_o pollute_a nature_n be_v not_o only_o cleanse_v while_o he_o be_v in_o her_o womb_n 30_o but_o also_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n she_o be_v enable_v to_o conceive_v his_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o her_o seed_n into_o a_o holy_a babe_n of_o unspotted_a flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n and_o in_o his_o season_n to_o bring_v forth_o her_o first_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n 31_o yea_o the_o true_a god_n and_o everlasting_a father_n himself_o and_o call_v his_o name_n according_a to_o his_o nature_n emanuel_n jesus_n or_o bless_v 32_o so_o that_o you_o which_o be_v inward_o baptise_a with_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a
one_o of_o israel_n may_v see_v in_o some_o measure_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o two_o scripture_n seed_n the_o angelical_a devil_n first_o become_v a_o man-child_n &_o the_o angelical_a god_n afterward_o become_v a_o man-child_n 33_o thus_o the_o most_o holy_a god_n abase_v himself_o in_o the_o very_a womb_n of_o a_o woman_n that_o he_o may_v first_o or_o last_o destroy_v the_o power_n of_o that_o serpentine_a reason_n or_o lie_v imagination_n in_o all_o his_o elect_a israelite_n chap._n xxxiii_o 1_o what_o form_n the_o devil_n be_v of_o before_o he_o tempt_v eve_n 2_o spiritual_a body_n do_v not_o change_v their_o form_n but_o their_o glory_n 3_o spirit_n can_v take_v up_o no_o body_n but_o their_o own_o 4_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n be_v not_o a_o apple_n or_o any_o other_o fruit_n that_o can_v be_v eat_v with_o the_o tooth_n it_o be_v write_v but_o god_n give_v it_o a_o body_n as_o it_o please_v he_o even_o to_o every_o seed_n his_o own_o body_n 2_o my_o spiritual_a friend_n according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o letter_n you_o may_v see_v that_o by_o the_o free_a word_n of_o the_o creator_n every_o seed_n or_o spirit_n natural_o bring_v forth_o its_o own_o body_n or_o likeness_n in_o its_o season_n 3_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o serpent_n angel_n when_o he_o tempt_v eve_n he_o be_v not_o a_o homely_a beast_n as_o man_n vain_o imagine_v from_o their_o beastly_a reason_n 4_o but_o he_o be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n and_o appear_v unto_o eve_n in_o form_n like_o unto_o a_o glorious_a god_n or_o man_n 5_o for_o this_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o understand_v who_o soul_n be_v fix_v upon_o a_o substantial_a glory_n to_o come_v though_o the_o spiritual_a body_n of_o god_n or_o angel_n be_v transmute_v into_o natural_a body_n or_o though_o the_o mortal_a body_n of_o man_n be_v change_v into_o immortality_n yet_o the_o form_n of_o their_o person_n be_v never_o alter_v but_o the_o beauty_n of_o glory_n of_o they_o only_o 6_o but_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o be_v any_o thing_n hard_a for_o the_o lord_n or_o can_v he_o bot_n appear_v in_o any_o form_n or_o transmute_v his_o creature_n into_o any_o shape_n whatsoever_o after_o he_o have_v form_v he_o 7_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v from_o the_o truth_n itself_o the_o creator_n can_v do_v whatsoever_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n see_v sit_v 8_o now_o in_o his_o wisdom_n he_o foresee_v that_o his_o infinite_a power_n and_o wonderful_a glory_n will_v most_o apparent_o be_v see_v by_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n in_o a_o comely_a order_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v 9_o so_o that_o all_o creature_n from_o eternity_n appear_v most_o amiable_a in_o his_o eye_n that_o in_o time_n be_v to_o bring_v forth_o their_o own_o body_n according_a to_o their_o kind_n 10_o wherefore_o when_o any_o monster_n be_v bear_v you_o may_v know_v it_o be_v either_o through_o unnatural_a mix_n of_o seed_n together_o or_o it_o be_v some_o judgement_n answerable_a to_o some_o wicked_a act_n or_o else_o it_o be_v a_o forerunner_n of_o some_o strange_a or_o dreadful_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o fall_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o monstrous_a mind_a man_n or_o woman_n which_o abhor_v the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o personal_a majesty_n 11_o for_o our_o god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o spiritual_a and_o natural_a order_n and_o not_o of_o magical_a confusion_n 12_o this_o truth_n will_v be_v a_o eternal_a witness_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o canaanitish_a lie_v devil_n which_o say_v when_o the_o body_n of_o man_n turn_v to_o its_o dust_n the_o soul_n be_v swallow_v up_o into_o the_o eternal_a ocean_n or_o else_o it_o appear_v in_o some_o other_o form_n as_o namely_o a_o horse_n or_o a_o ass_n or_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o root_n or_o a_o flower_n or_o such_o like_a 13_o my_o belove_a spiritual_a brethren_n from_o whence_o think_v you_o proceed_v this_o and_o all_o such_o like_a error_n true_o only_o from_o some_o secret_a lust_n man_n be_v in_o bondage_n unto_o which_o be_v as_o dear_a to_o they_o as_o their_o very_a life_n 14_o therefore_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o appear_v again_o in_o the_o body_n of_o man_n lest_o they_o shall_v reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o all_o their_o former_a filthiness_n bless_v be_v the_o purify_a spirit_n for_o they_o shall_v see_v their_o god_n eternal_o face_n to_o face_n 15_o again_o it_o be_v write_v that_o she_o give_v also_o to_o her_o husband_n with_o she_o and_o he_o do_v eat_v that_o be_v be_v full_a of_o natural_a lust_n from_o that_o serpent_n within_o she_o she_o by_o her_o angelical_a speech_n do_v entice_v her_o husband_n to_o lie_v with_o she_o and_o so_o he_o be_v defile_v also_o with_o she_o 16_o but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v that_o the_o woman_n be_v make_v for_o that_o very_a end_n for_o procreation_n of_o mankind_n therefore_o it_o seem_v something_o strange_a that_o natural_a lust_n shall_v be_v that_o sin_n of_o eat_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n or_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n 17_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v truth_n the_o woman_n be_v form_v for_o that_o very_a end_n and_o in_o her_o seed_n be_v the_o very_a law_n of_o generation_n 18_o but_o she_o be_v defile_v in_o spirit_n and_o body_n by_o another_o to_o her_o own_o knowledge_n before_o she_o be_v capable_a to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o desire_v she_o own_o husband_n 19_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o aforesaid_a she_o immediate_o desire_v he_o to_o hide_v her_o know_a rebellion_n against_o her_o creator_n 20_o beside_o all_o this_o know_v her self_o first_o in_o the_o transgression_n her_o conscience_n tell_v she_o that_o she_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v ensnare_v her_o innocent_a husband_n to_o hide_v her_o folly_n 21_o but_o to_o have_v wait_v for_o the_o issue_n of_o she_o own_o do_n i_o mean_v the_o birth_n of_o that_o serpentine_a curse_a cain_n in_o her_o womb_n before_o she_o have_v desire_v the_o lawful_a knowledge_n of_o her_o own_o husband_n 22_o again_o if_o you_o that_o be_v sober_a do_v but_o serious_o ponder_v it_o in_o your_o spirit_n you_o can_v be_v so_o weak_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o law_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o death_n depend_v upon_o the_o eat_n of_o a_o apple_n from_o a_o natural_a tree_n 23_o for_o you_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n cause_v the_o earth_n to_o bring_v forth_o all_o variety_n of_o fruit_n to_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o mouth_n principal_o as_o a_o superfluity_n of_o delight_n of_o the_o taste_n of_o man_n only_o 24_o therefore_o how_o can_v sober_a man_n imagine_v or_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o all_o mankind_n shall_v be_v so_o venomed_a through_o the_o eat_n of_o a_o apple_n 25_o as_o sure_a as_o the_o lord_n live_v it_o be_v such_o a_o devilish_a apple_n that_o be_v eat_v by_o eve_n that_o it_o have_v and_o will_v bring_v forth_o many_o million_o of_o serpent_n dragon_n devil_n in_o form_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n unto_o eternal_a condemnation_n 26_o again_o you_o know_v it_o be_v write_v that_o christ_n say_v unto_o his_o apostle_n perceive_v you_o not_o yet_o that_o whatsoever_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n go_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o draught_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n come_v from_o the_o heart_n for_o out_o of_o the_o heart_n come_v evil_a thought_n murder_n adultery_n fornication_n theft_n false_a testimony_n slander_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o defile_v the_o man_n mat._n the_o 15._o 27_o my_o spiritual_a brethren_n i_o hope_v ere_o this_o you_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o natural_a apple_n eat_v by_o eve_n mouth_n and_o so_o pass_v through_o her_o belly_n into_o the_o draught_n that_o defile_v her_o whole_a man_n 28_o for_o if_o our_o god_n and_o only_a saviour_n be_v all_o truth_n as_o he_o be_v and_o can_v possible_o lie_v then_o that_o which_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o man_n go_v into_o his_o belly_n and_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o draught_n without_o defile_v his_o soul_n so_o that_o without_o controversy_n that_o fruit_n or_o apple_n take_v and_o eat_v or_o receive_v by_o eve_n and_o adam_n through_o which_o they_o be_v whole_o defile_v shame_a and_o fearful_o torment_v never_o come_v into_o their_o mouth_n or_o tooth_n as_o literal_a wise_a man_n vain_o imagine_v 29_o but_o as_o beforesaid_a it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a eat_n of_o the_o serpent_n angel_n in_o the_o innocent_a mouth_n of_o eve_n soul_n by_o her_o unlawful_a lust_a after_o her_o innocent_a husband_n that_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o may_v cover_v her_o iniquity_n or_o when_o she_o be_v call_v to_o a_o account_n help_v to_o bear_v her_o burden_n 30_o again_o it_o be_v write_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n
consist_v not_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_n also_o it_o be_v write_v whatsoever_o be_v sell_v in_o the_o shambles_n eat_v make_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n sake_n furthermore_o it_o be_v write_v there_o be_v nothing_o unclean_a in_o itself_o but_o as_o it_o be_v so_o esteem_v for_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o in_o these_o and_o many_o such_o like_a scripture_n say_n be_v it_o not_o as_o clear_v as_o the_o light_n itself_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v make_v may_v free_o be_v eat_v so_o that_o it_o be_v moderate_o take_v 31_o so_o likewise_o whatsoever_o be_v create_v at_o the_o first_o for_o man_n eat_v with_o his_o mouth_n be_v absolute_o pure_a and_o very_a good_a for_o that_o end_n it_o be_v make_v but_o of_o the_o contrary_a that_o fruit_n or_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n eat_v of_o by_o eve_n be_v not_o only_o full_a of_o torment_v spiritual_a venom_n to_o her_o former_a peace_n of_o soul_n but_o it_o cause_v her_o very_a body_n also_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o all_o manner_n of_o mortal_a disease_n 32_o beside_o a_o secret_a fear_n of_o eternal_a death_n which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o until_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n in_o the_o garden_n of_o her_o soul_n quiet_v her_o wound_a spirit_n with_o a_o gracious_a promise_n of_o a_o glorious_a deliverance_n through_o his_o appearance_n in_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n in_o that_o say_n the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v break_v the_o serpent_n head_n chap._n xxxiv_o 1_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n be_v no_o natural_a tree_n 2_o what_o it_o be_v 3_o whence_o the_o originality_n of_o sin_n come_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o god_n say_v behold_v i_o have_v give_v unto_o you_o every_o herb_n bear_v seed_n which_o be_v upon_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o every_o tree_n wherein_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o tree_n bear_v seed_n that_o shall_v be_v to_o you_o for_o meat_n and_o god_n see_v all_o that_o he_o have_v make_v and_o lo_o it_o be_v very_o good_a 2_o if_o thou_o which_o read_v this_o point_n do_v but_o view_v this_o place_n of_o scripture_n with_o sobriety_n of_o spirit_n thou_o can_v not_o then_o but_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o gross_a absurdity_n of_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o world_n that_o have_v long_o imagine_v the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n to_o be_v a_o natural_a tree_n bear_v apple_n or_o such_o like_a fruit_n 3_o again_o if_o every_o green_a herb_n upon_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o every_o tree_n wherein_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o tree_n bear_v seed_n be_v give_v unto_o adam_n and_o eve_n for_o their_o food_n according_a to_o what_o be_v here_o write_v and_o that_o god_n that_o give_v it_o they_o see_v all_o that_o he_o have_v make_v to_o be_v very_o good_a how_o then_o can_v any_o sober_a man_n possible_o imagine_v or_o think_v that_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n can_v be_v of_o this_o creation_n though_o it_o appear_v unto_o eve_n upon_o this_o earth_n see_v all_o the_o tree_n that_o god_n have_v make_v in_o this_o earth_n be_v very_o good_a in_o his_o sight_n as_o aforesaid_a 4_o this_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v from_o the_o learned_a whether_o this_o earth_n be_v capable_a of_o any_o curse_n or_o any_o natural_a thing_n that_o grow_v in_o it_o before_o eve_n have_v eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n 5_o if_o the_o earth_n be_v blessed_v and_o all_o that_o be_v create_v in_o it_o until_o eve_n have_v rebel_v against_o the_o creator_n then_o without_o controversy_n what_o ever_o venomous_a creature_n tree_n or_o herb_n there_o be_v or_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o eat_v with_o the_o mouth_n they_o have_v no_o be_v in_o this_o creation_n until_o eve_n have_v transgress_v 6_o therefore_o that_o tree_n of_o life_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o garden_n and_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n can_v not_o possible_o be_v tree_n bear_v natural_a apple_n as_o have_v be_v long_o imagine_v 7_o but_o they_o be_v tree_n of_o high_a concernment_n then_o of_o eat_v their_o fruit_n with_o the_o mouth_n and_o cast_v of_o it_o into_o the_o draught_n 8_o do_v not_o all_o man_n that_o have_v any_o true_a light_n in_o they_o look_v upon_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o genesis_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o revelation_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o spiritual_a person_n of_o that_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o only_a everliving_a god_n from_o whence_o flow_v all_o live_a water_n into_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n who_o be_v the_o spiritual_a tree_n of_o eternal_a glory_n 9_o do_v not_o those_o man_n that_o be_v of_o a_o sound_a judgement_n in_o the_o thing_n of_o eternity_n look_v upon_o that_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n to_o be_v the_o outcast_a unclean_a person_n of_o that_o serpent_n dragon_n devil_n which_o through_o essential_a union_n with_o eve_n become_v that_o murder_a lie_v curse_a cain_n through_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o elect_a israelite_n be_v all_o defile_v as_o well_o as_o the_o cananitish_a reprobate_a tree_n of_o eternal_a death_n until_o they_o be_v water_v anew_o from_o the_o glorious_a tree_n of_o life_n eternal_a as_o beforesaid_a 10_o but_o alas_o in_o this_o confuse_a age_n of_o seem_v lofty_a light_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o spiritual_a tree_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o the_o carnal_a tree_n of_o eternal_a death_n speak_v of_o in_o scripture-record_n do_v not_o many_o atheistical_a mind_a man_n in_o these_o our_o day_n endeavour_n with_o all_o their_o might_n to_o convert_v the_o glorious_a truth_n of_o the_o everliving_a jesus_n into_o nothing_o but_o brain_n fancy_n of_o notional_a lie_a vanity_n 11_o be_v it_o not_o become_v a_o second_o nature_n unto_o they_o for_o silver_n or_o honour_n to_o deceive_v their_o own_o soul_n by_o flatter_v their_o poor_a deceive_v brethren_n lie_v under_o the_o power_n of_o many_o filthy_a lust_n that_o all_o their_o sin_n shall_v be_v burn_v up_o but_o their_o soul_n shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o into_o the_o eternal_a be_v 12_o suppose_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n have_v be_v a_o natural_a apple_n the_o creator_n nature_n be_v all_o purity_n itself_o and_o the_o soul_n of_o eve_n be_v of_o his_o divine_a image_n if_o the_o forbid_a tree_n be_v pure_a in_o its_o nature_n also_o before_o it_o be_v touch_v by_o eve_n whence_o then_o come_v that_o sin_n upon_o the_o spirit_n of_o eve_n see_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v in_o this_o creation_n be_v very_o good_a at_o the_o first_o as_o be_v clear_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n record_v already_o 13_o this_o i_o be_o sure_a of_o that_o no_o man_n that_o be_v sober_a neither_o will_n nor_o dare_v say_v that_o that_o evil_a proceed_v from_o the_o creator_n forbid_v she_o to_o touch_v the_o tree_n or_o its_o fruit_n neither_o can_v that_o sin_n possible_o proceed_v from_o the_o soul_n of_o eve_n because_o it_o be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o its_o creation_n 14_o and_o if_o that_o tree_n and_o its_o fruit_n eat_v of_o by_o eve_n be_v of_o this_o creation_n how_o can_v there_o possible_o be_v any_o evil_n in_o its_o nature_n either_o see_v every_o thing_n and_o tree_n that_o be_v form_v in_o this_o world_n be_v make_v very_o good_a at_o the_o first_o in_o the_o pure_a eye_n of_o the_o creator_n as_o abundant_o beforesaid_a 15_o but_o some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o though_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n be_v uncapable_a of_o the_o least_o motion_n of_o evil_n through_o the_o infinite_a purity_n of_o its_o spiritual_a nature_n yet_o sin_n be_v but_o a_o defect_n of_o nature_n may_v it_o not_o original_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o soul_n of_o eve_n though_o it_o be_v pure_o create_v and_o for_o want_v of_o a_o creator_n infinite_a power_n in_o itself_o for_o its_o own_o preservation_n 16_o from_o the_o light_n of_o life_n eternal_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v as_o for_o the_o originality_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v both_o grant_v and_o clear_o demonstrate_v already_o in_o that_o secret_a of_o the_o creation_n of_o angel_n beforesaid_a that_o the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_n spring_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o unsatisfied_a angelical_a reprobate_n through_o the_o absent_v of_o the_o creator_n inspire_v glorious_a excellency_n to_o he_o 17_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v against_o all_o spiritual_a or_o rational_a truth_n that_o be_v sober_a that_o the_o least_o motion_n of_o evil_n can_v possible_o have_v its_o original_n from_o the_o divine_a spirit_n of_o eve_n or_o adam_n 18_o therefore_o
much_o less_o out_o of_o any_o kind_n of_o appletree_n or_o any_o other_o wooden_a tree_n herb_n or_o plant_n which_o be_v make_v for_o man_n natural_a comfort_n or_o delight_v only_o 19_o for_o this_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o understand_v though_o the_o soul_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v but_o finite_a create_v being_n yet_o because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n of_o he_o that_o make_v they_o their_o spirit_n be_v as_o free_v from_o all_o kind_n of_o desire_n after_o wisdom_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o as_o the_o creator_n himself_o for_o as_o beforesaid_a where_o any_o desire_n be_v there_o be_v a_o want_n and_o the_o least_o want_n that_o be_v must_v needs_o be_v a_o defect_n or_o weakness_n in_o nature_n which_o be_v not_o immediate_o satisfy_v it_o be_v subject_a to_o become_v nothing_o but_o evil_a 20_o wherefore_o from_o a_o divine_a gift_n receive_v from_o on_o high_a i_o affirm_v against_o man_n or_o angel_n that_o that_o first_o desire_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o eve_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o her_o own_o spirit_n but_o from_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n of_o the_o unsatisfy_a serpent_n language_n speak_v into_o she_o 21_o for_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_o quick_a may_v know_v that_o there_o appear_v no_o kind_n of_o desire_n or_o lust_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o eve_n towards_o adam_n until_o she_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n and_o if_o that_o fruit_n have_v be_v a_o apple_n be_v it_o not_o very_o strange_a that_o adam_n shall_v be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o until_o his_o wife_n have_v find_v it_o out_o see_v all_o the_o tree_n in_o the_o garden_n which_o the_o lord_n god_n have_v make_v be_v very_o good_a and_o give_v they_o for_o food_n 22_o moreover_o who_o ever_o thou_o be_v after_o the_o perusal_n of_o this_o truth_n shall_v call_v this_o nonsense_n blasphemy_n heresy_n lie_v and_o such_o like_a because_o it_o discover_v thy_o darkness_n be_v it_o not_o a_o clear_a testimony_n in_o thy_o own_o conscience_n that_o thou_o be_v one_o of_o the_o curse_a brood_n of_o the_o old_a serpent_n devil_n beforesaid_a which_o be_v not_o able_a to_o endure_v the_o light_n because_o by_o it_o thy_o deed_n be_v manifest_v to_o be_v evil_a 23_o again_o though_o i_o know_v i_o have_v write_v sufficient_o concern_v this_o truth_n already_o unto_o all_o that_o be_v of_o a_o quick_a comprehension_n yet_o for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o the_o lamb_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o a_o further_a convince_a of_o all_o gainsay_n wolf_n i_o shall_v go_v on_o to_o the_o utmost_a in_o the_o further_o clear_v of_o this_o truth_n of_o so_o high_a concernment_n unto_o mankind_n chap._n xxxv_o 1_o the_o curse_n be_v not_o pronounce_v upon_o any_o natural_a beast_n but_o the_o fall_v angel_n wherefore_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n you_o may_v find_v it_o thus_o write_v then_o the_o lord_n god_n say_v to_o the_o serpent_n because_o thou_o have_v do_v this_o thou_o be_v curse_v above_o all_o cattle_n and_o above_o every_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n upon_o thy_o belly_n shall_v thou_o go_v and_o dust_n thou_o shall_v eat_v all_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o life_n i_o will_v also_o put_v enmity_n between_o thou_o and_o the_o woman_n and_o between_o thy_o seed_n and_o her_o seed_n he_o shall_v break_v thy_o head_n and_o thou_o shall_v bruise_v his_o heel_n my_o spiritual_a brethren_n can_v any_o of_o you_o upon_o mature_a consideration_n possible_o imagine_v that_o that_o serpent_n be_v a_o natural_a beast_n that_o be_v pronounce_v curse_v by_o the_o lord_n for_o some_o evil_a deed_n do_v unto_o innocent_a eve_n 2_o if_o it_o be_v a_o evil_a spirit_n that_o speak_v through_o the_o serpent_n mouth_n can_v any_o sober_a man_n think_v that_o the_o most_o wise_a creator_n will_v have_v pronounce_v a_o curse_n upon_o the_o bruit_n beast_n and_o his_o seed_n if_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v do_v to_o eve_n proceed_v only_o from_o the_o devil_n within_o the_o body_n of_o that_o serpent_n 3_o can_v you_o find_v in_o any_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o ever_o the_o lord_n charge_v any_o evil_a spirit_n or_o devil_n with_o that_o deed_n do_v unto_o eve_n but_o that_o serpent_n that_o speak_v unto_o she_o 4_o therefore_o what_o ever_o man_n vain_o dream_v of_o apple_n pull_v from_o wooden_a tree_n or_o of_o a_o natural_a serpent_n or_o of_o a_o evil_a spirit_n in_o the_o body_n of_o a_o ignorant_a beast_n or_o any_o such_o like_a imaginary_a stuff_n concern_v the_o deceive_a of_o eve_n yet_o you_o that_o be_v true_o enlighten_v from_o on_o high_a may_v know_v that_o that_o serpent_n by_o who_o eve_n be_v beguile_v be_v that_o angelical_a reprobate_n cast_v down_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n beforesaid_a into_o this_o perish_a world_n 5_o moreover_o you_o may_v understand_v also_o that_o the_o serpent_n angel_n deceive_v eve_n upon_o a_o spiritual_a account_n and_o not_o upon_o a_o natural_a account_n because_o you_o know_v that_o she_o be_v ignorant_a of_o that_o poor_a and_o low_a thing_n of_o lust_a after_o a_o man_n until_o she_o have_v obey_v that_o serpent_n voice_n 6_o therefore_o when_o the_o creator_n denounce_v that_o curse_n upon_o the_o serpent_n and_o his_o seed_n that_o angelical_a serpent_n be_v within_o the_o womb_n of_o eve_n and_o not_o without_o she_o 7_o and_o the_o lord_n call_v he_o a_o serpent_n only_o because_o of_o his_o exceed_a subtlety_n to_o deceive_v 8_o concern_v the_o serpent_n go_v upon_o his_o belly_n and_o eat_a dust_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n if_o that_o have_v be_v a_o natural_a serpent_n so_o threaten_v by_o the_o creator_n be_v he_o not_o as_o well_o as_o if_o he_o have_v enjoy_v leg_n to_o go_v and_o the_o choice_a of_o thing_n to_o eat_v see_v the_o one_o be_v become_v as_o natural_a to_o he_o as_o the_o other_o 9_o of_o what_o concernment_n be_v that_o to_o the_o woman_n for_o a_o natural_a serpent_n to_o be_v curse_v by_o the_o lord_n do_v any_o man_n or_o woman_n heed_n serpent_n upon_o that_o account_n or_o any_o other_o whatsoever_o 10_o moreover_o suppose_v that_o curse_n have_v be_v denounce_v against_o a_o evil_a spirit_n distinct_a from_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o eve_n what_o hurt_n will_v that_o have_v be_v unto_o eve_n or_o adam_n or_o their_o generation_n 11_o or_o who_o regard_v a_o curse_n upon_o any_o devil_n in_o the_o least_o so_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v not_o that_o evil_a spirit_n or_o devil_n so_o curse_v 12_o concern_v the_o enmity_n put_v between_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o serpent_n and_o their_o seed_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v from_o any_o sober_a man_n whether_o there_o may_v not_o be_v as_o much_o enmity_n between_o eve_n and_o a_o she-bear_n as_o a_o natural_a serpent_n 13_o be_v it_o not_o believe_v by_o all_o man_n that_o be_v possess_v with_o the_o true_a light_n that_o that_o christ_n jesus_n record_v in_o holy_a writ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v that_o heavenly_a seed_n of_o the_o woman_n here_o speak_v of_o 14_o moreover_o be_v not_o this_o jesus_n conceive_v of_o the_o virgin_n seed_n into_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n and_o be_v he_o not_o pronounce_v bless_v when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n 15_o furthermore_o be_v not_o all_o his_o spiritual_a seed_n of_o elect_a mankind_n pronounce_v bless_v with_o he_o also_o as_o the_o offspring_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o heir_n of_o immortal_a crown_n of_o eternal_a glory_n 16_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n record_v throughout_o make_v a_o distinction_n between_o two_o seed_n or_o generation_n of_o mankind_n 17_o and_o do_v they_o not_o attribute_v name_n unto_o they_o according_a to_o their_o several_a nature_n 18_o moreover_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n make_v mention_n of_o a_o day_n of_o judgement_n both_o for_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o quick_a and_o do_v it_o not_o frequent_o speak_v of_o a_o eternal_a personal_a glory_n and_o its_o habitation_n prepare_v for_o some_o call_v by_o the_o title_n of_o elect_a and_o precious_a jewel_n choose_v once_o son_n of_o god_n saint_n the_o bless_a of_o the_o lord_n and_o such_o like_a 19_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n also_o speak_v of_o a_o everlasting_a shame_n of_o personal_a fiery_a death_n in_o utter_a darkness_n ordain_v for_o other_o and_o their_o place_n of_o residence_n 20_o and_o do_v it_o not_o ascribe_v title_n unto_o they_o according_a to_o their_o nature_n as_o namely_o devil_n dragon_n serpent_n viper_n son_n of_o belial_n curse_a child_n and_o such_o like_a 21_o again_o if_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v that_o angelical_a god_n which_o become_v that_o bless_a son_n of_o the_o virgin_n promise_v to_o
adam_n and_o eve_n after_o their_o transgression_n the_o which_o none_o can_v deny_v after_o so_o clear_a a_o demonstration_n of_o the_o scripture_n seed_n as_o this_o be_v except_o they_o be_v reprobate_n then_o without_o controversy_n that_o serpent_n which_o be_v curse_v for_o his_o evil_a deed_n be_v not_o without_o she_o but_o within_o she_o when_o he_o receive_v that_o sentence_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o seed_n or_o first-born_a of_o eve_n call_v cain_n be_v that_o curse_a serpent_n angel_n himself_o clothe_v with_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n 22_o who_o not_o be_v able_a to_o endure_v the_o sight_n of_o righteous_a abel_n that_o bless_a seed_n or_o son_n of_o god_n answerable_a unto_o that_o curse_n of_o enmity_n denounce_v against_o he_o in_o the_o womb_n of_o eve_n his_o spirit_n be_v restless_a until_o he_o have_v manifest_v himself_o to_o be_v that_o old_a serpent_n murder_v lie_a devil_n and_o the_o father_n of_o all_o cananitish_a murthering-minded_n man_n and_o woman_n so_o frequent_o speak_v of_o in_o scripture_n not_o as_o cain_n which_o be_v of_o that_o wicked_a one_o and_o slay_v his_o brother_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o john_n chap._n 3._o he_o that_o sow_v the_o good_a seed_n be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o the_o field_n be_v the_o world_n and_o the_o good_a seed_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o tare_n be_v the_o child_n of_o that_o wicked_a one_o and_o the_o enemy_n that_o sow_v they_o be_v the_o devil_n mat._n 13._o chap._n xxxvi_o 1_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o word_n eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n 2_o no_o true_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o immediate_a inspiration_n 3_o reason_v not_o capable_a of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n 4_o but_o faith_n only_o 5_o no_o devil_n but_o man_n and_o woman_n 6_o no_o devil_n without_o man_n tempt_v any_o 7_o but_o the_o seed_n or_o lust_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n what_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o that_o word_n eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a from_o the_o light_n of_o life_n eternal_a to_o this_o i_o answer_v the_o most_o wise_a creator_n call_v it_o eat_v for_o several_a respect_n 2_o first_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o lord_n god_n call_v it_o eat_v that_o neither_o man_n or_o angel_n shall_v know_v his_o secret_n until_o it_o be_v his_o divine_a pleasure_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v the_o praise_n and_o glory_n alone_o from_o all_o those_o that_o he_o shall_v reveal_v they_o unto_o 3_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n call_v it_o eat_v because_o of_o the_o civility_n of_o that_o speech_n for_o the_o scripture_n language_n be_v much_o like_a to_o a_o modest_a pure_a virgin_n who_o be_v loath_a to_o have_v her_o secret_a part_n mention_v in_o the_o least_o though_o they_o be_v as_o useful_o in_o their_o kind_n and_o as_o honourable_a be_v undefiled_a as_o any_o part_n of_o the_o body_n 4_o and_o why_o be_v they_o honourable_a because_o the_o only_a lord_n of_o all_o life_n and_o glory_n have_v honour_v they_o himself_o by_o his_o bless_a birth_n 5_o moreover_o you_o know_v if_o a_o spiritual_a or_o natural_a thing_n be_v propound_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o a_o man_n or_o woman_n of_o which_o they_o have_v have_v no_o experience_n their_o spirit_n feed_v upon_o it_o and_o consider_v the_o pleasure_n of_o it_o as_o much_o as_o possible_a may_v be_v before_o they_o consent_v to_o taste_v of_o it_o with_o the_o whole_a man_n 6_o so_o likewise_o in_o the_o word_n eat_v you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v this_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o eve_n shall_v beware_v of_o harken_v unto_o any_o other_o voice_n that_o be_v contrary_a unto_o that_o divine_a image_n or_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n within_o she_o so_o that_o if_o she_o shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o stranger_n she_o shall_v not_o give_v way_n in_o the_o least_o unto_o that_o voice_n lest_o she_o shall_v be_v overcome_v therewith_o 7_o again_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n instead_o of_o say_v unto_o eve_n thou_o shall_v not_o eat_v thereof_o shall_v have_v say_v thou_o shall_v not_o spiritual_o or_o natural_o lust_n after_o any_o god_n or_o angel_n but_o be_v content_a with_o what_o i_o have_v appoint_v for_o thou_o then_o indeed_o there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o interpretation_n upon_o the_o word_n but_o as_o beforesaid_a the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n see_v it_o most_o fit_a to_o act_v otherwise_o 8_o therefore_o what_o ever_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o world_n dream_n of_o find_v out_o the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o eternity_n by_o search_v into_o the_o scripture_n record_n and_o compare_v they_o together_o the_o divine_a majesty_n have_v lock_v up_o all_o the_o principal_a secret_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o his_o own_o spiritual_a breast_n that_o he_o by_o any_o immediate_a inspiration_n may_v dispose_v of_o they_o into_o the_o spirit_n of_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n most_o advantageous_a for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o their_o consolation_n 9_o therefore_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n run_v not_o in_o the_o line_n of_o reason_n but_o in_o the_o line_n of_o faith_n inspiration_n or_o revelation_n according_a to_o those_o say_n in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o other_o record_n 10_o by_o faith_n the_o divine_a work_n of_o creation_n and_o wonderful_a mystery_n of_o redemption_n be_v and_o be_v know_v with_o the_o immortal_a eternal_a glory_n and_o everlasting_a shame_n of_o man_n person_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 11_o but_o of_o the_o contrary_a you_o shall_v never_o read_v in_o any_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o any_o man_n know_v the_o thing_n of_o eternal_a glory_n in_o the_o least_o by_o any_o kind_n of_o rational_a comprehension_n whatsoever_o 12_o i_o confess_v the_o natural_a reason_n of_o man_n be_v a_o very_a good_a handmaid_n if_o it_o be_v well_o qualify_v with_o the_o spiritual_a dame_n of_o divine_a faith_n for_o illustrate_v of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n unto_o weak_a comprehension_n 13_o but_o as_o for_o true_o understand_v the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n by_o the_o high_a reason_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o man_n or_o angel_n it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a as_o abundant_o beforesaid_a 14_o why_o because_o though_o the_o spirit_n of_o reason_n be_v never_o so_o pure_a yet_o you_o may_v know_v its_o nature_n be_v but_o desire_v only_o after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o that_o spirit_n from_o whence_o it_o have_v its_o live_a being_n 15_o but_o of_o the_o contrary_a spiritual_a truth_n or_o faith_n be_v of_o the_o very_a divine_a nature_n of_o god_n himself_o in_o what_o soul_n soever_o that_o heavenly_a seed_n be_v sow_o it_o spring_v up_o in_o that_o spirit_n with_o variety_n of_o glorious_a consolation_n in_o reference_n unto_o life_n eternal_a by_o virtue_n of_o a_o intercourse_n with_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v 16_o moreover_o i_o confess_v that_o a_o man_n that_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o solomon-like_a gift_n of_o natural_a reason_n may_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v all_o word_n whether_o they_o be_v speak_v in_o a_o good_a form_n sense_n or_o language_n or_o no_o and_o to_o be_v mighty_a in_o dispute_n about_o the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o eternity_n 17_o but_o as_o for_o his_o real_a understanding_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o eternal_a thing_n or_o no_o he_o have_v no_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o that_o at_o all_o but_o his_o bare_a thought_n only_o which_o equal_o weigh_v in_o that_o balance_n it_o may_v be_v true_a or_o it_o may_v be_v false_a and_o all_o this_o be_v for_o want_v of_o a_o infallibility_n of_o truth_n itself_o 18_o therefore_o though_o the_o divine_a thing_n of_o the_o eternal_a majesty_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o spiritual_a purity_n of_o infallible_a truth_n in_o themselves_o yet_o unto_o that_o rational_a wise_a man_n they_o be_v nothing_o but_o nonsensical_a blasphemy_n or_o lie_v tale_n till_o his_o reason_n be_v confound_v in_o he_o by_o a_o true_a and_o heavenly_a faith_n 19_o again_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o evil_a angel_n or_o devil_n live_v in_o the_o air_n and_o a_o devil_n among_o they_o call_v belzebub_n the_o prince_n of_o devil_n what_o need_v any_o man_n trouble_v himself_o with_o the_o least_o fear_n of_o eternal_a death_n whatsoever_o wickedness_n be_v commit_v by_o he_o because_o if_o a_o man_n be_v tempt_v to_o evil_a by_o any_o devil_n but_o what_o be_v in_o his_o own_o nature_n only_o that_o evil_a spirit_n be_v to_o be_v eternal_o damn_v and_o the_o man_n to_o be_v set_v free_a 20_o nay_o moreover_o if_o sin_n or_o evil_n issue_v not_o from_o man_n
angel_n some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o may_v it_o not_o be_v a_o long_a season_n be_v there_o not_o many_o prophecy_n yet_o to_o be_v fulfil_v before_o his_o come_n as_o the_o call_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n and_o such_o like_a 2_o from_o a_o unerring_a spirit_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v as_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v the_o last_o prophet_n under_o the_o law_n and_o the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o sudden_a appear_v of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n in_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n 3_o so_o likewise_o i_o positive_o affirm_v against_o all_o gainsayers_a under_o heaven_n that_o i_o john_n reeve_n be_o the_o last_o commissionated_a prophet_n that_o ever_o shall_v declare_v divine_a secret_n according_a to_o the_o foundation_n of_o truth_n until_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n appear_v on_o his_o throne_n of_o glory_n visible_o to_o be_v see_v by_o all_o his_o elect_a face_n to_o face_n 4_o but_o of_o the_o contrary_a in_o that_o day_n of_o our_o god_n and_o king_n of_o glorious_a crown_n appear_v none_o of_o those_o curse_a man_n and_o woman_n which_o blasphemous_o say_v that_o god_n have_v no_o person_n at_o all_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o behold_v his_o face_n and_o live_v but_o according_a to_o holy_a writ_n they_o shall_v cry_v to_o the_o mountain_n hill_n or_o rock_n to_o hide_v they_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o his_o bright_a burn_a body_n or_o face_n that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n 5_o concern_v a_o general_a visible_a call_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o all_o nation_n to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n i_o say_v from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n that_o send_v i_o that_o there_o will_v never_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n indeed_o the_o ministerial_a artist_n have_v of_o a_o long_a season_n imagine_v a_o outward_a call_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o their_o vain_a glorious_a seem_a holiness_n but_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o holy_a god_n intend_v no_o such_o thing_n 6_o wherefore_o to_o confound_v their_o carnal_a wisdom_n his_o glorious_a purpose_n be_v to_o call_v home_o to_o himself_o those_o jew_n and_o gentile_n elect_v to_o everlasting_a life_n by_o the_o invisible_a teach_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a spirit_n 7_o you_o that_o be_v sober_a may_v come_v to_o understand_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o jew_n there_o be_v a_o moysaicall_a jew_n and_o a_o apostolical_a jew_n 8_o moreover_o you_o may_v know_v that_o those_o man_n call_v independent_o annabaptist_n presbyterian_o be_v the_o literal_a apostolical_a jew_n 9_o and_o those_o man_n that_o observe_v saturday_n for_o their_o sabbath_n be_v those_o moysaicall_a legal_a jew_n which_o utter_o deny_v that_o christ_n be_v yet_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o ignorant_o expect_v his_o appear_v in_o a_o fleshly_a glorious_a manner_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o in_o the_o throne_n of_o david_n his_o father_n 10_o moreover_o these_o sabbattical_a saturday_n jew_n john_n tanee_n like_v do_v imagine_v when_o their_o fleshly_a christ_n appear_v to_o reign_v over_o they_o that_o he_o will_v gather_v they_o out_o of_o all_o nation_n wherein_o they_o be_v scatter_v and_o conduct_v they_o into_o the_o inheritance_n of_o their_o father_n that_o promise_v land_n of_o canaan_n and_o there_o they_o make_v account_n with_o their_o imaginary_a king_n to_o live_v in_o a_o temporal_a glorious_a condition_n for_o a_o long_a season_n and_o as_o they_o have_v be_v servant_n and_o slave_n to_o all_o nation_n wherein_o they_o be_v scatter_v so_o likewise_o as_o a_o reward_n of_o their_o servitude_n they_o full_o expect_v that_o all_o nation_n shall_v bow_v down_o to_o they_o and_o bring_v in_o their_o riches_n and_o glory_n unto_o they_o as_o their_o vassal_n for_o ever_o 11_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v that_o these_o unbelieving_a moysaicall_a jew_n which_o expect_v a_o carnal_a christ_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o be_v those_o jew_n which_o at_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n say_v his_o blood_n be_v upon_o we_o and_o our_o child_n and_o true_o you_o know_v his_o blood_n be_v upon_o they_o and_o their_o child_n to_o some_o purpose_n in_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o unto_o this_o day_n yea_o and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n will_v never_o spiritual_o gather_v the_o seed_n of_o those_o jew_n which_o rate_v a_o bloody_a barabas_n above_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n himself_o 13_o moreover_o those_o jew_n which_o be_v afraid_a of_o have_v any_o hand_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o father_n of_o those_o spiritual_a jew_n in_o all_o nation_n that_o be_v mix_v in_o marriage_n with_o the_o gentile_n who_o merciful_a innocent_a spirit_n be_v deliver_v from_o all_o tyranny_n over_o man_n conscience_n 14_o furthermore_o those_o independent_a annabaptist_n presbyterian_a man_n which_o hold_v it_o lawful_a just_a and_o good_a to_o persecute_v man_n in_o their_o person_n and_o estate_n upon_o a_o spiritual_a account_n i_o say_v from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n that_o they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o offspring_n of_o those_o bloody-minded_a jew_n that_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o blasphemy_n as_o beforesaid_a 15_o o_o bless_a be_v all_o unpersecute_a merciful_a mind_a man_n and_o woman_n only_o 16_o all_o innocent_a merciful_a independent_a annabaptist_n presbyterian_a man_n or_o woman_n that_o be_v preserve_v from_o a_o persecute_v mind_n of_o divine_a thing_n which_o seem_v difficult_a from_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n i_o declare_v those_o be_v part_n of_o god_n spiritual_a wheat_n which_o be_v mix_v with_o the_o chaffy_a jew_n and_o gentile_n which_o be_v the_o offspring_n of_o curse_a cain_n who_o the_o lord_n shall_v burn_v with_o unquenchable_a fire_n when_o he_o come_v in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o angel_n to_o receive_v his_o spiritual_a wheat_n into_o his_o heavenly_a barn_n as_o aforesaid_a 17_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_o enlighten_v from_o on_o high_a may_v clear_o see_v that_o the_o call_n of_o the_o elect_a jew_n in_o all_o nation_n unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o his_o heavenly_a truth_n be_v not_o mean_v a_o outward_a call_n of_o they_o from_o a_o moysaicall_a legallity_n unto_o a_o apostolical_a literallity_n as_o many_o man_n have_v vain_o imagine_v but_o it_o be_v a_o inward_a call_n of_o they_o by_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o one_o personal_a majesty_n on_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n and_o his_o heavenly_a truth_n 18_o again_o concern_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n in_o the_o 24._o of_o matthew_n and_o the_o 30._o it_o be_v thus_o write_v and_o then_o shall_v appear_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n and_o then_o shall_v all_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n mourn_v and_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n this_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v that_o substance_n or_o very_a son_n of_o man_n himself_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o personal_a appear_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n with_o his_o glitter_a angel_n cause_v such_o a_o fiery_a brightness_n not_o only_o in_o the_o visible_a heaven_n above_o but_o the_o whole_a earth_n beneath_o also_o appear_v like_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n or_o burn_a lightning_n insomuch_o that_o all_o the_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o never_o expect_v that_o dreadful_a day_n because_o their_o person_n be_v not_o transmute_v into_o the_o divine_a likeness_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man._n 19_o therefore_o their_o unbelieving_a earthly_a spirit_n do_v quake_v and_o tremble_v lament_v and_o howl_v like_o dog_n for_o very_a fear_n of_o the_o foresay_a sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v rend_v they_o to_o piece_n and_o burn_v they_o and_o their_o inward_a god_n or_o christ_n to_o powder_n i_o mean_v all_o those_o which_o glory_v of_o a_o god_n or_o christ_n within_o they_o only_o and_o curse_o despise_v this_o personal_a god_n on_o his_o glorious_a throne_n without_o they_o 20_o thus_o you_o in_o who_o person_n the_o king_n of_o glory_n reign_v by_o the_o heavenly_a income_n of_o his_o eternal_a brightness_n may_v in_o some_o measure_n see_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n when_o he_o appear_v in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o holy_a angel_n 21_o as_o the_o immortalize_v spirit_n and_o body_n be_v fill_v with_o astonish_a ravishment_n with_o the_o very_a sight_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o his_o glorious_a throne_n aforesaid_a 22_o so_o likewise_o the_o carnal_a spirit_n and_o body_n of_o all_o hypocrite_n which_o glory_v in_o a_o christ_n ordinance_n
they_o may_v have_v no_o confidence_n in_o the_o strength_n of_o that_o light_n which_o be_v within_o they_o but_o that_o they_o may_v cast_v down_o the_o crown_n of_o their_o spiritual_a confidence_n at_o the_o divine_a foot_n of_o his_o heavenly_a majesty_n as_o the_o only_a author_n protector_n and_o finisher_n of_o their_o eternal_a blessedness_n 11_o so_o likewise_o it_o be_v with_o the_o elect_a also_o when_o they_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o though_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v they_o as_o a_o seal_n of_o his_o eternal_a love_n that_o they_o may_v glory_v only_o in_o the_o lamb_n and_o be_v enable_v to_o wear_v his_o crown_n of_o thorn_n to_o their_o life_n end_v as_o a_o preparative_n unto_o glorious_a crown_n at_o his_o appear_v yet_o i_o will_v have_v you_o for_o who_o these_o thorn_n and_o crown_n be_v prepare_v to_o understand_v because_o the_o life_n of_o all_o light_n or_o glory_v you_o possess_v be_v hide_v in_o the_o divine_a breast_n or_o book_n of_o life_n with_o christ_n in_o god_n 12_o therefore_o when_o your_o soul_n come_v to_o die_v all_o your_o spiritual_a motion_n must_v enter_v into_o death_n also_o until_o time_n be_v no_o more_o because_o the_o power_n wisdom_n and_o glory_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v see_v in_o this_o thing_n above_o all_o his_o former_a work_n 13_o again_o he_o be_v the_o only_a light_n and_o life_n of_o man_n will_v not_o this_o be_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n to_o his_o infinite_a power_n see_v the_o spirit_n of_o mankind_n be_v mix_v together_o in_o the_o sea_n and_o earth_n in_o a_o marvellous_a manner_n yet_o by_o a_o word_n speak_v he_o shall_v call_v his_o elect_a by_o name_n as_o he_o do_v lazarus_n and_o they_o shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n and_o come_v forth_o of_o their_o grave_n as_o one_o man_n with_o distinct_a person_n all_o glorious_a yet_o very_a flesh_n and_o bone_n and_o with_o those_o elect_v then_o live_v who_o body_n shall_v be_v transmute_v into_o glory_n also_o ascend_v as_o swift_a as_o thought_n to_o meet_v their_o god_n in_o the_o air_n and_o sit_v in_o throne_n of_o judgement_n with_o he_o over_o all_o the_o angel_n of_o darkness_n remain_v in_o this_o destroy_a world_n for_o everlasting_a 14_o moreover_o if_o that_o error_n of_o man_n body_n die_v only_o and_o not_o their_o soul_n can_v possible_o be_v true_a than_o no_o man_n can_v die_v or_o be_v put_v to_o death_n at_o all_o because_o the_o life_n of_o man_n body_n be_v his_o spirit_n and_o but_o one_o spirit_n only_o though_o there_o be_v a_o double_a motion_n in_o it_o of_o contrary_a nature_n and_o effect_n by_o the_o secret_a decree_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o eternal_a wisdom_n power_n and_o glory_n over_o the_o elect_a and_o reprobate_n 15_o thus_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v see_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o saint_n live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o concern_v the_o place_n of_o refuge_n where_o their_o life_n be_v hide_v both_o in_o life_n and_o in_o death_n be_v not_o this_o truth_n answerable_a to_o those_o say_n of_o christ_n himself_o in_o john_n the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o though_o he_o be_v dead_a yet_o shall_v he_o live_v and_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n say_v behold_v i_o make_v all_o thing_n new_a revelation_n the_o 20._o and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n again_o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o say_v i_o not_o unto_o thou_o that_o if_o thou_o do_v believe_v thou_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n you_o know_v this_o be_v speak_v by_o christ_n that_o god_n of_o all_o power_n wisdom_n and_o glory_n at_o his_o raise_n lazarus_n from_o death_n to_o life_n 16_o therefore_o you_o may_v know_v also_o that_o the_o great_a glory_n of_o all_o will_v redound_v to_o his_o infinite_a majesty_n he_o shall_v short_o come_v in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n to_o call_v forth_o the_o live_a dead_a to_o glorious_a blessedness_n in_o the_o great_a white_a throne_n with_o himself_o moses_n elias_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o to_o call_v forth_o the_o dead_a live_a into_o shameful_a cursedness_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o utter_a darkness_n burn_v together_o to_o eternity_n on_o this_o earth_n where_o they_o possess_v all_o their_o former_a glory_n and_o act_v their_o unrighteousness_n against_o christ_n and_o his_o redeem_a one_o then_o will_v this_o scripture_n be_v fulfil_v and_o they_o shall_v hear_v a_o great_a voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v unto_o they_o come_v up_o hither_o and_o they_o shall_v ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n in_o a_o cloud_n and_o their_o enemy_n shall_v see_v they_o and_o these_o scripture_n chap._n li._n 1_o eternal_a damnation_n be_v a_o live_a death_n and_o a_o die_a life_n 2_o three_o book_n will_v be_v open_v at_o the_o last_o judgement_n 3_o signify_v the_o three_o commission_n of_o the_o law_n the_o gospel_n and_o the_o spirit_n 4_o the_o heathen_n be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n of_o their_o conscience_n have_v not_o have_v the_o scripture_n 5_o the_o prophet_n heavenly_a conclusion_n again_o but_o fire_n come_v down_o from_o god_n out_o of_o heaven_n and_o devour_v they_o moreover_o and_o the_o devil_n that_o deceive_v they_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o lake_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n where_o that_o beast_n and_o false_a prophet_n be_v and_o shall_v be_v torment_v even_o day_n and_o night_n for_o evermore_o and_o i_o see_v the_o dead_a both_o great_a and_o small_a stand_n before_o god_n and_o the_o book_n be_v open_v and_o another_o book_n be_v open_v which_o be_v the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o the_o dead_a be_v judge_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n according_a to_o their_o work_n and_o death_n and_o hell_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n this_o be_v the_o second_o death_n these_o both_o be_v alive_a cast_v into_o a_o lake_n of_o fire_n burn_v with_o brimstone_n and_o whosoever_o be_v not_o find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n my_o brethren_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o in_o the_o flesh_n also_o which_o be_v sober_a you_o see_v when_o christ_n come_v in_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o angel_n the_o book_n must_v be_v open_v which_o be_v three_o in_o number_n the_o book_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o law_n must_v be_v open_v in_o the_o conscience_n of_o they_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n and_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o obedience_n unto_o it_o but_o hate_v to_o perform_v it_o and_o they_o will_v have_v work_n enough_o with_o that_o fiery_a law_n and_o all_o their_o former_a filthiness_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n to_o sit_v in_o judgement_n on_o those_o burn_a brimstone_n soul_n and_o body_n of_o flesh_n and_o bone_n to_o all_o eternity_n 2_o the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o gospel_n will_v be_v open_v also_o in_o the_o conscience_n of_o those_o that_o make_v a_o profession_n thereof_o and_o hate_a obedience_n to_o it_o and_o that_o literal_a fiery_a judge_n and_o their_o former_a unrighteousness_n will_v neither_o want_v work_n to_o sit_v in_o judgement_n on_o those_o fleshly_a body_n of_o burn_a brimstone_n even_o world_n without_o end_n 3_o moreover_o the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n which_o be_v the_o book_n of_o life_n shall_v be_v open_v also_o in_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o pretend_a light_n in_o these_o last_o day_n and_o those_o who_o name_n be_v not_o find_v write_v in_o that_o book_n of_o life_n as_o commissionated_a messenger_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n to_o bear_v witness_n unto_o a_o personal_a jesus_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n but_o publish_v a_o lie_a jesus_n in_o the_o low_a heaven_n of_o their_o carnal_a spirit_n only_o that_o pretend_v god_n or_o christ_n with_o all_o their_o lie_n speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o blasphemy_n against_o his_o majesty_n person_n shall_v burn_v more_o fiery_a hot_a then_o any_o other_o opinion_n among_o man_n even_o to_o all_o eternity_n as_o aforesaid_a all_o be_v not_o spiritual_a gold_n that_o glister_v 4_o again_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o speak_v of_o one_o sort_n more_o who_o natural_a conscience_n must_v be_v open_v also_o 5_o this_o sort_n of_o man_n be_v those_o call_v heathen_n which_o never_o have_v the_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n among_o they_o i_o say_v from_o the_o true_a god_n that_o these_o man_n and_o all_o the_o naturalist_n in_o the_o world_n according_a to_o their_o rebellion_n against_o their_o rational_a judge_n unto_o which_o they_o acknowledge_v all_o obedience_n of_o righteousness_n between_o man_n and_o man_n be_v due_a this_o
god_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n only_o with_o all_o their_o rebellion_n against_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o dreadful_a judge_n sit_v in_o their_o fleshly_a conscience_n with_o a_o echo_n of_o everlasting_a torment_n in_o utter_a darkness_n 6_o thus_o in_o some_o measure_n i_o have_v be_v make_v to_o declare_v unto_o my_o spiritual_a yea_o and_o fleshly_a brethren_n also_o the_o sudden_a glorious_a and_o dreadful_a appear_v of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o mighty_a god-man_n sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n with_o his_o elect_a angel_n to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a according_a to_o his_o own_o say_n in_o holy_a writ_n 7_o and_o now_o as_o a_o conclusion_n unto_o this_o epistle_n i_o shall_v speak_v a_o few_o word_n to_o all_o that_o may_v peruse_v it_o in_o the_o name_n and_o power_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n by_o who_o most_o bless_a spirit_n i_o be_v inspire_o move_v to_o write_v it_o 8_o my_o belove_a brethren_n that_o have_v the_o least_o hope_n in_o you_o of_o a_o glory_n to_o come_v i_o confess_v through_o unusualness_n of_o such_o a_o language_n many_o say_n in_o this_o book_n may_v seem_v to_o your_o reason_n very_o absurd_a at_o the_o first_o 9_o but_o if_o the_o light_n of_o life_n eternal_a qualify_v you_o with_o a_o meek_a and_o patient_a spirit_n they_o may_v be_v as_o plain_a and_o easy_a to_o your_o understanding_n at_o the_o last_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v they_o to_o i_o his_o poor_a despise_a messenger_n 10_o i_o know_v if_o i_o be_v a_o university_n man_n possess_v perish_a wealth_n or_o honour_n among_o prince_n your_o rational_a spirit_n will_v be_v as_o subject_a to_o err_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n as_o now_o they_o be_v on_o ●he_v leave_v 11_o o_o forget_v not_o that_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n see_v it_o most_o advantageous_a for_o his_o glory_n to_o choose_v base_a and_o despise_a thing_n to_o confound_v the_o honourable_a and_o eloquent_a thing_n of_o this_o vain_a glorious_a world_n 12_o again_o if_o some_o man_n shall_v say_v unto_o i_o that_o i_o have_v write_v many_o say_n without_o book_n concern_v the_o creation_n of_o angel_n and_o such_o like_a i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o they_o whether_o moses_n have_v any_o book_n by_o he_o when_o he_o write_v of_o the_o creation_n of_o this_o world_n and_o the_o thing_n therein_o 13_o though_o the_o holy_a prophet_n christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n alude_v sometime_o to_o the_o former_a prophetical_a writing_n to_o convince_v gainsayers_a yet_o you_o know_v they_o speak_v by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n only_o according_a to_o that_o say_n in_o holy_a writ_n all_o scripture_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n and_o holy_a man_n of_o old_a speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 14_o moreover_o if_o you_o shall_v ask_v i_o how_o shall_v you_o know_v whether_o i_o write_v by_o true_a inspiration_n or_o no_o as_o to_o that_o if_o you_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o scripture_n no_o man_n can_v deceive_v you_o 15_o furthermore_o unless_o you_o have_v a_o light_n in_o you_o that_o can_v clear_o convince_v i_o of_o error_n in_o my_o epistle_n in_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o my_o writing_n you_o also_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o holy_a writ_n 16_o if_o i_o shall_v write_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v exact_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n i_o shall_v then_o write_v nothing_o at_o all_o because_o they_o be_v other_o man_n work_n and_o you_o have_v they_o already_o beside_o many_o eloquent_a man_n to_o play_v upon_o the_o harp_n of_o those_o record_n very_o harmonious_o unto_o your_o carnal_a ear_n which_o godliness_n of_o they_o be_v very_o gainful_a unto_o many_o of_o they_o as_o you_o well_o know_v 17_o if_o i_o shall_v write_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v record_v in_o holy_a writ_n there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o other_o witness_n to_o prove_v i_o a_o liar_n but_o my_o book_n only_o and_o so_o i_o shall_v be_v bind_v together_o in_o a_o bundle_n of_o literal_a tare_n and_o burn_v with_o unquenchable_a fire_n at_o the_o appear_v of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o his_o glory_n with_o h●s_n mighty_a angel_n because_o i_o have_v declare_v myself_o send_v forth_o by_o voice_n from_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n himself_o to_o demonstrate_v some_o secret_n to_o his_o choose_a one_o that_o have_v not_o be_v reveal_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v 18_o and_o now_o i_o desire_v no_o other_o witness_n to_o bear_v record_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n to_o this_o epistle_n whether_o it_o be_v truth_n or_o no_o but_o the_o everliving_a jehovah_n or_o eternal_a spiritual_a jesus_n himself_o with_o all_o his_o holy_a angel_n even_o so_o come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o amen_o amen_n john_n reeve_n and_o lodowick_n muggleton_n the_o two_o last_o immediate_a commissionated_a witness_n or_o prophet_n by_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o the_o man_n jesus_n glorify_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o eternity_n which_o be_v far_o above_o all_o god_n heaven_n angel_n and_o men._n finis_fw-la
further_a convince_a or_o confound_v of_o that_o luciferian_a reason_n in_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o world_n against_o the_o infinite_a power_n wisdom_n or_o glory_n of_o the_o creator_n i_o shall_v speak_v somewhat_o from_o the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o curious_a quere_z 13_o you_o may_v know_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a and_o very_a easy_a for_o a_o infinite_a spirit_n to_o bring_v to_o pass_v when_o his_o glory_n move_v he_o to_o do_v it_o 14_o you_o may_v also_o know_v that_o though_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n be_v infinite_a yet_o it_o have_v no_o power_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o except_o his_o glory_n move_v he_o to_o it_o or_o against_o its_o own_o glory_n 15_o i_o confess_v it_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o reason_n but_o far_o above_o all_o reason_n reach_v true_o to_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o creation_n or_o redemption_n of_o the_o mighty_a jehovah_n or_o everliving_a jesus_n 16_o what_o be_v the_o height_n or_o depth_n of_o the_o pure_a rational_a comprehension_n in_o man_n or_o angel_n concern_v the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o eternity_n be_v it_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o either_o strength_n of_o memory_n or_o excellency_n of_o speech_n or_o swiftness_n of_o understanding_n in_o comprehend_v all_o word_n whatsoever_o whether_o they_o be_v utter_v according_a to_o acuteness_n of_o sense_n or_o no_o but_o for_o a_o true_a understanding_n of_o those_o heavenly_a thing_n signify_v by_o those_o divine_a word_n it_o know_v nothing_o at_o all_o in_o the_o least_o 17_o you_o know_v it_o be_v write_v with_o thou_o be_v a_o well_o of_o life_n and_o in_o thy_o light_n shall_v we_o see_v light_n here_o you_o see_v that_o david_n do_v not_o attribute_v the_o sight_n of_o that_o light_n of_o the_o well_o of_o life_n unto_o his_o rational_a comprehension_n but_o unto_o the_o divine_a light_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o the_o well_o of_o life_n eternal_a 18_o so_o likewise_o you_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o holy_a angel_n themselves_o do_v not_o comprehend_v that_o inspire_a light_n of_o life_n in_o they_o by_o their_o own_o rational_a purity_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o glorious_a incomes_a themselves_o proceed_v from_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n 19_o so_o that_o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v clear_o see_v that_o neither_o man_n nor_o angel_n be_v capable_a to_o comprehend_v divine_a truth_n by_o any_o rational_a comprehension_n whatsoever_o 20_o but_o only_a by_o virtue_n of_o divine_a word_n or_o motion_n receive_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o infinite_a majesty_n of_o all_o glorious_a truth_n which_o be_v eternal_a 21_o if_o the_o divine_a majesty_n can_v not_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n speak_v into_o some_o substance_n distinct_a from_o he_o as_o well_o create_v sensible_a and_o insensible_a live_a being_n of_o variety_n of_o nature_n contrary_a to_o his_o own_o heavenly_a nature_n as_o produce_v sensible_a being_n of_o his_o own_o divine_a nature_n how_o can_v be_v possible_o then_o be_v infinite_a 22_o if_o the_o most_o high_a god_n shall_v have_v inherent_a in_o his_o own_o spirit_n somewhat_o of_o every_o nature_n that_o he_o have_v create_v how_o can_v he_o then_o be_v all_o variety_n of_o nothing_o but_o infinite_a purity_n in_o himself_o 23_o or_o how_o can_v there_o be_v any_o spiritual_a creator_n at_o all_o but_o perish_v nature_n only_o as_o over-wise_a man_n blind_o imagine_v 24_o i_o will_v glad_o have_v you_o that_o be_v spiritual-minded_n to_o understand_v this_o divine_a secret_n though_o every_o thing_n that_o have_v life_n have_v its_o original_n from_o the_o creator_n yet_o all_o spirit_n who_o nature_n be_v opposite_a to_o the_o divine_a glory_n be_v without_o he_o and_o not_o within_o he_o and_o so_o be_v eternal_o distinct_a from_o his_o most_o pure_a spirit_n 25_o from_o eternity_n he_o perfect_o foresee_v all_o those_o spirit_n alive_a in_o their_o own_o element_n though_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o senseless_a confuse_a matter_n in_o themselves_o and_o when_o his_o divine_a pleasure_n move_v he_o to_o make_v they_o appear_v into_o distinct_a live_a being_n you_o may_v know_v that_o it_o be_v none_o of_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o a_o powerful_a word_n only_o command_v those_o spirit_n to_o come_v forth_o out_o of_o secret_a death_n or_o darkness_n and_o manifest_v themselves_o according_a to_o their_o several_a property_n into_o distinct_a live_a being_n in_o the_o visible_a sight_n of_o themselves_o and_o elect_a man_n and_o angel_n as_o manifestation_n of_o his_o eternal_a decree_n 26_o wherefore_o you_o know_v in_o the_o form_n of_o the_o man_n adam_n it_o be_v record_v that_o god_n say_v let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n but_o you_o never_o read_v or_o hear_v that_o any_o other_o creature_n be_v make_v in_o the_o image_n or_o likeness_n of_o god_n beside_o they_o 27_o you_o know_v it_o be_v write_v that_o christ_n take_v not_o on_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n but_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n why_o do_v not_o the_o creator_n take_v on_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n but_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a may_v know_v it_o be_v because_o the_o one_o be_v create_v or_o renew_v into_o his_o own_o image_n or_o spiritual_a likeness_n and_o the_o other_o be_v in_o his_o nature_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n 28_o if_o the_o angel_n spirit_n have_v be_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n how_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n take_v not_o on_o he_o the_o angelical_a nature_n 29_o but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v that_o those_o word_n be_v speak_v in_o relation_n to_o christ_n fleshly_a part_n to_o that_o i_o answer_v be_v not_o christ_n both_o god_n and_o man_n in_o one_o person_n and_o be_v not_o his_o divine_a spirit_n and_o natural_a flesh_n one_o bodily_a essence_n after_o his_o godhead_n be_v transmute_v into_o pure_a manhood_n 30_o though_o the_o unchangeable_a glory_n of_o the_o creator_n be_v whole_o transmute_v into_o a_o body_n of_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n that_o sinful_a mortal_n may_v behold_v their_o god_n face_n to_o face_n and_o live_v 31_o yet_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o divine_a purity_n neither_o be_v nor_o possible_o can_v be_v change_v but_o only_o his_o infiniteness_n be_v lay_v down_o in_o flesh_n for_o a_o season_n for_o the_o fulfil_n of_o scripture_n prophecy_v 32_o again_o if_o christ_n take_v not_o on_o he_o that_o angelical_a nature_n of_o pure_a reason_n what_o then_o think_v you_o will_v become_v of_o all_o rational_a wise_a man_n which_o understand_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v visible_a unto_o the_o eye_n of_o earnal_a flesh_n 33_o if_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o the_o creator_n have_v no_o angelical_a reason_n in_o his_o divine_a nature_n some_o man_n may_v say_v unto_o i_o how_o will_v you_o answer_v that_o scripture_n where_o the_o creator_n say_v unto_o the_o jew_n come_v let_v we_o reason_n together_o 34_o as_o to_o that_o you_o may_v know_v when_o that_o scripture_n be_v speak_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o talk_v with_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o his_o own_o person_n but_o in_o the_o person_n of_o his_o true_a prophet_n which_o be_v send_v to_o convince_v those_o stony-hearted_a jew_n by_o declare_v the_o glorious_a god_n and_o his_o spiritual_a truth_n unto_o they_o in_o the_o balance_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n 35_o you_o know_v be_v it_o write_v that_o the_o israelitish_n jew_n cry_v out_o let_v not_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o any_o more_o lest_o we_o die_v and_o it_o be_v grant_v unto_o they_o that_o he_o will_v not_o speak_v unto_o they_o any_o more_o in_o his_o own_o person_n as_o they_o desire_v therefore_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o lord_n reason_v with_o the_o jew_n be_v only_o by_o his_o prophet_n which_o be_v rational_a man_n like_v unto_o themselves_o 36_o if_o the_o creator_n himself_o seem_v to_o reason_n with_o any_o man_n be_v it_o any_o other_o way_n but_o to_o confound_v the_o wisdom_n of_o unclean_a reason_n in_o man_n by_o way_n of_o quere_z and_o such_o like_a as_o christ_n the_o only_a god_n often_o do_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n 37_o you_o know_v it_o be_v write_v that_o christ_n weep_v over_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o jewish_a nation_n say_v how_o often_o will_v i_o have_v gather_v you_o together_o as_o a_o hen_n gather_v her_o chicken_n under_o her_o wing_n and_o you_o will_v not_o behold_v as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n he_o weep_v over_o the_o unbelief_n of_o their_o bloody_a mind_a spirit_n but_o as_o he_o be_v a_o god_n he_o rejoice_v at_o their_o damnation_n in_o relation_n unto_o his_o eternal_a decree_n 38_o be_v not_o this_o answerable_a unto_o those_o say_n of_o